home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1997-09-30 | 425.0 KB | 9,413 lines |
- **The Project Gutenberg Etext of Kidnapped by R. L. Stevenson**
- #17 in our series by Robert Louis Stevenson
-
-
- Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
- the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
-
- Please take a look at the important information in this header.
- We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
- electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
-
-
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- Kidnapped
-
- by Robert Louis Stevenson
-
- January, 1995 [Etext #421]
-
-
- **The Project Gutenberg Etext of Kidnapped by R. L. Stevenson**
- *****This file should be named kdnpd10.txt or kdnpd10.zip******
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, kdnpd11.txt.
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, kdnpd10a.txt.
-
-
- We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
- of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
-
- Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
- midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
- The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
- Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
- preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
- and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
- up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
- in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
- a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
- look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
- new copy has at least one byte more or less.
-
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $4
- million dollars per hour this year as we release some eight text
- files per month: thus upping our productivity from $2 million.
-
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
- of the year 2001.
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- Project Gutenberg
- P. O. Box 2782
- Champaign, IL 61825
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
- Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET INDEX?00.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
-
-
-
- KIDNAPPED
- BEING
- MEMOIRS OF THE ADVENTURES OF
- DAVID BALFOUR
- IN THE YEAR 1751
-
-
-
- HOW HE WAS KIDNAPPED AND CAST AWAY; HIS SUFFERINGS IN
- A DESERT ISLE; HIS JOURNEY IN THE WILD HIGHLANDS;
- HIS ACQUAINTANCE WITH ALAN BRECK STEWART
- AND OTHER NOTORIOUS HIGHLAND JACOBITES;
- WITH ALL THAT HE SUFFERED AT THE
- HANDS OF HIS UNCLE, EBENEZER
- BALFOUR OF SHAWS, FALSELY
- SO CALLED
-
- WRITTEN BY HIMSELF AND NOW SET FORTH BY
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
- WITH A PREFACE BY MRS. STEVENSON
-
-
-
-
- PREFACE
- TO
- THE BIOGRAPHICAL EDITION
-
- While my husband and Mr. Henley were engaged in writing plays in
- Bournemouth they made a number of titles, hoping to use them in
- the future. Dramatic composition was not what my husband
- preferred, but the torrent of Mr. Henley's enthusiasm swept him
- off his feet. However, after several plays had been finished,
- and his health seriously impaired by his endeavours to keep up
- with Mr. Henley, play writing was abandoned forever, and my
- husband returned to his legitimate vocation. Having added one of
- the titles, The Hanging Judge, to the list of projected plays,
- now thrown aside, and emboldened by my husband's offer to give me
- any help needed, I concluded to try and write it myself.
-
- As I wanted a trial scene in the Old Bailey, I chose the period
- of 1700 for my purpose; but being shamefully ignorant of my
- subject, and my husband confessing to little more knowledge than
- I possessed, a London bookseller was commissioned to send us
- everything he could procure bearing on Old Bailey trials. A
- great package came in response to our order, and very soon we
- were both absorbed, not so much in the trials as in following the
- brilliant career of a Mr. Garrow, who appeared as counsel in many
- of the cases. We sent for more books, and yet more, still intent
- on Mr. Garrow, whose subtle cross-examination of witnesses and
- masterly, if sometimes startling, methods of arriving at the
- truth seemed more thrilling to us than any novel.
-
- Occasionally other trials than those of the Old Bailey would be
- included in the package of books we received from London; among
- these my husband found and read with avidity:--
-
-
- THE
- TRIAL
- OF
- JAMES STEWART
- in Aucharn in Duror of Appin
- FOR THE
- Murder of COLIN CAMPBELL of Glenure, Efq;
- Factor for His Majefty on the forfeited
- Estate of Ardfhiel.
-
-
- My husband was always interested in this period of his country's
- history, and had already the intention of writing a story that
- should turn on the Appin murder. The tale was to be of a boy,
- David Balfour, supposed to belong to my husband's own family, who
- should travel in Scotland as though it were a foreign country,
- meeting with various adventures and misadventures by the way.
- From the trial of James Stewart my husband gleaned much valuable
- material for his novel, the most important being the character of
- Alan Breck. Aside from having described him as "smallish in
- stature," my husband seems to have taken Alan Breck's personal
- appearance, even to his clothing, from the book.
-
- A letter from James Stewart to Mr. John Macfarlane, introduced as
- evidence in the trial, says: "There is one Alan Stewart, a
- distant friend of the late Ardshiel's, who is in the French
- service, and came over in March last, as he said to some, in
- order to settle at home; to others, that he was to go soon back;
- and was, as I hear, the day that the murder was committed, seen
- not far from the place where it happened, and is not now to be
- seen; by which it is believed he was the actor. He is a
- desperate foolish fellow; and if he is guilty, came to the
- country for that very purpose. He is a tall, pock-pitted lad,
- very black hair, and wore a blue coat and metal buttons, an old
- red vest, and breeches of the same colour." A second witness
- testified to having seen him wearing "a blue coat with silver
- buttons, a red waistcoat, black shag breeches, tartan hose, and a
- feathered hat, with a big coat, dun coloured," a costume referred
- to by one of the counsel as "French cloathes which were
- remarkable."
-
- There are many incidents given in the trial that point to Alan's
- fiery spirit and Highland quickness to take offence. One witness
- "declared also That the said Alan Breck threatened that he would
- challenge Ballieveolan and his sons to fight because of his
- removing the declarant last year from Glenduror." On another
- page: "Duncan Campbell, change-keeper at Annat, aged thirty-five
- years, married, witness cited, sworn, purged and examined ut
- supra, depones, That, in the month of April last, the deponent
- met with Alan Breck Stewart, with whom he was not acquainted, and
- John Stewart, in Auchnacoan, in the house of the walk miller of
- Auchofragan, and went on with them to the house: Alan Breck
- Stewart said, that he hated all the name of Campbell; and the
- deponent said, he had no reason for doing so: But Alan said, he
- had very good reason for it: that thereafter they left that
- house; and, after drinking a dram at another house, came to the
- deponent's house, where they went in, and drunk some drams, and
- Alan Breck renewed the former Conversation; and the deponent,
- making the same answer, Alan said, that, if the deponent had any
- respect for his friends, he would tell them, that if they offered
- to turn out the possessors of Ardshiel's estate, he would make
- black cocks of them, before they entered into possession by which
- the deponent understood shooting them, it being a common phrase
- in the country."
-
- Some time after the publication of Kidnapped we stopped for a
- short while in the Appin country, where we were surprised and
- interested to discover that the feeling concerning the murder of
- Glenure (the "Red Fox," also called "Colin Roy") was almost as
- keen as though the tragedy had taken place the day before. For
- several years my husband received letters of expostulation or
- commendation from members of the Campbell and Stewart clans. I
- have in my possession a paper, yellow with age, that was sent
- soon after the novel appeared, containing "The Pedigree of the
- Family of Appine," wherein it is said that "Alan 3rd Baron of
- Appine was not killed at Flowdoun, tho there, but lived to a
- great old age. He married Cameron Daughter to Ewen Cameron of
- Lochiel." Following this is a paragraph stating that "John
- Stewart 1st of Ardsheall of his descendants Alan Breck had better
- be omitted. Duncan Baan Stewart in Achindarroch his father was a
- Bastard."
-
- One day, while my husband was busily at work, I sat beside him
- reading an old cookery book called The Compleat Housewife: or
- Accomplish'd Gentlewoman's Companion. In the midst of receipts
- for "Rabbits, and Chickens mumbled, Pickled Samphire, Skirret
- Pye, Baked Tansy," and other forgotten delicacies, there were
- directions for the preparation of several lotions for the
- preservation of beauty. One of these was so charming that I
- interrupted my husband to read it aloud. "Just what I wanted!"
- he exclaimed; and the receipt for the "Lily of the Valley Water"
- was instantly incorporated into Kidnapped.
-
- F. V. DE G. S.
-
-
-
-
- DEDICATION
-
- MY DEAR CHARLES BAXTER:
-
-
- If you ever read this tale, you will likely ask yourself more
- questions than I should care to answer: as for instance how the
- Appin murder has come to fall in the year 1751, how the Torran
- rocks have crept so near to Earraid, or why the printed trial is
- silent as to all that touches David Balfour. These are nuts
- beyond my ability to crack. But if you tried me on the point of
- Alan's guilt or innocence, I think I could defend the reading of
- the text. To this day you will find the tradition of Appin clear
- in Alan's favour. If you inquire, you may even hear that the
- descendants of "the other man" who fired the shot are in the
- country to this day. But that other man's name, inquire as you
- please, you shall not hear; for the Highlander values a secret
- for itself and for the congenial exercise of keeping it I might
- go on for long to justify one point and own another indefensible;
- it is more honest to confess at once how little I am touched by
- the desire of accuracy. This is no furniture for the scholar's
- library, but a book for the winter evening school-room when the
- tasks are over and the hour for bed draws near; and honest Alan,
- who was a grim old fire-eater in his day has in this new avatar
- no more desperate purpose than to steal some young gentleman's
- attention from his Ovid, carry him awhile into the Highlands and
- the last century, and pack him to bed with some engaging images
- to mingle with his dreams.
-
- As for you, my dear Charles, I do not even ask you to like this
- tale. But perhaps when he is older, your son will; he may then
- be pleased to find his father's name on the fly-leaf; and in the
- meanwhile it pleases me to set it there, in memory of many days
- that were happy and some (now perhaps as pleasant to remember)
- that were sad. If it is strange for me to look back from a
- distance both in time and space on these bygone adventures of our
- youth, it must be stranger for you who tread the same
- streets--who may to-morrow open the door of the old Speculative,
- where we begin to rank with Scott and Robert Emmet and the
- beloved and inglorious Macbean--or may pass the corner of the
- close where that great society, the L. J. R., held its meetings
- and drank its beer, sitting in the seats of Burns and his
- companions. I think I see you, moving there by plain daylight,
- beholding with your natural eyes those places that have now
- become for your companion a part of the scenery of dreams. How,
- in the intervals of present business, the past must echo in your
- memory! Let it not echo often without some kind thoughts of your
- friend,
-
- R.L.S.
- SKERRYVORE,
- BOURNEMOUTH.
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
- CHAPTER
-
- I I SET OFF UPON MY JOURNEY TO THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
- II I COME TO MY JOURNEY'S END
- III I MAKE ACQUAINTANCE OF MY UNCLE
- IV I RUN A GREAT DANGER IN THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
- V I GO TO THE QUEEN'S FERRY
- VI WHAT BEFELL AT THE QUEEN'S FERRY
- VII I GO TO SEA IN THE BRIG "COVENANT" OF DYSART
- VIII THE ROUND-HOUSE
- IX THE MAN WITH THE BELT OF GOLD
- X THE SIEGE OF THE ROUND-HOUSE
- XI THE CAPTAIN KNUCKLES UNDER
- XII I HEAR OF THE "RED FOX"
- XIII THE LOSS OF THE BRIG
- XIV THE ISLET
- XV THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: THROUGH THE ISLE OF MULL
- XVI THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: ACROSS MORVEN
- XVII THE DEATH OF THE RED FOX
- XVIIII TALK WITH ALAN IN THE WOOD OF LETTERMORE
- XIX THE HOUSE OF FEAR
- XX THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE ROCKS
- XXI THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE HEUGH OF CORRYNAKIEGH
- XXII THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE MOOR
- XXIII CLUNY'S CAGE
- XXIV THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE QUARREL IN BALQUHIDDER
- XXVI END OF THE FLIGHT: WE PASS THE FORTH
- XXVII I COME TO MR. RANKEILLOR
- XXVIII I GO IN QUEST OF MY INHERITANCE
- XXIX I COME INTO MY KINGDOM
- XXX GOOD-BYE
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- I SET OFF UPON MY JOURNEY TO THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
-
- I will begin the story of my adventures with a certain morning
- early in the month of June, the year of grace 1751, when I took
- the key for the last time out of the door of my father's house.
- The sun began to shine upon the summit of the hills as I went
- down the road; and by the time I had come as far as the manse,
- the blackbirds were whistling in the garden lilacs, and the mist
- that hung around the valley in the time of the dawn was beginning
- to arise and die away.
-
- Mr. Campbell, the minister of Essendean, was waiting for me by
- the garden gate, good man! He asked me if I had breakfasted; and
- hearing that I lacked for nothing, he took my hand in both of his
- and clapped it kindly under his arm.
-
- "Well, Davie, lad," said he, "I will go with you as far as the
- ford, to set you on the way." And we began to walk forward in
- silence.
-
- "Are ye sorry to leave Essendean?" said he, after awhile.
-
- "Why, sir," said I, "if I knew where I was going, or what was
- likely to become of me, I would tell you candidly. Essendean is
- a good place indeed, and I have been very happy there; but then I
- have never been anywhere else. My father and mother, since they
- are both dead, I shall be no nearer to in Essendean than in the
- Kingdom of Hungary, and, to speak truth, if I thought I had a
- chance to better myself where I was going I would go with a good
- will."
-
- "Ay?" said Mr. Campbell. "Very well, Davie. Then it behoves me
- to tell your fortune; or so far as I may. When your mother was
- gone, and your father (the worthy, Christian man) began to sicken
- for his end, he gave me in charge a certain letter, which he said
- was your inheritance. 'So soon,' says he, 'as I am gone, and the
- house is redd up and the gear disposed of' (all which, Davie,
- hath been done), 'give my boy this letter into his hand, and
- start him off to the house of Shaws, not far from Cramond. That
- is the place I came from,' he said, 'and it's where it befits
- that my boy should return. He is a steady lad,' your father
- said, 'and a canny goer; and I doubt not he will come safe, and
- be well lived where he goes.'"
-
- "The house of Shaws!" I cried. "What had my poor father to do
- with the house of Shaws?"
-
- "Nay," said Mr. Campbell, "who can tell that for a surety? But
- the name of that family, Davie, boy, is the name you bear --
- Balfours of Shaws: an ancient, honest, reputable house,
- peradventure in these latter days decayed. Your father, too, was
- a man of learning as befitted his position; no man more plausibly
- conducted school; nor had he the manner or the speech of a common
- dominie; but (as ye will yourself remember) I took aye a pleasure
- to have him to the manse to meet the gentry; and those of my own
- house, Campbell of Kilrennet, Campbell of Dunswire, Campbell of
- Minch, and others, all well-kenned gentlemen, had pleasure in his
- society. Lastly, to put all the elements of this affair before
- you, here is the testamentary letter itself, superscrived by the
- own hand of our departed brother."
-
- He gave me the letter, which was addressed in these words: "To
- the hands of Ebenezer Balfour, Esquire, of Shaws, in his house of
- Shaws, these will be delivered by my son, David Balfour." My
- heart was beating hard at this great prospect now suddenly
- opening before a lad of seventeen years of age, the son of a poor
- country dominie in the Forest of Ettrick.
-
- "Mr. Campbell," I stammered, "and if you were in my shoes, would
- you go?"
-
- "Of a surety," said the minister, "that would I, and without
- pause. A pretty lad like you should get to Cramond (which is
- near in by Edinburgh) in two days of walk. If the worst came to
- the worst, and your high relations (as I cannot but suppose them
- to be somewhat of your blood) should put you to the door, ye can
- but walk the two days back again and risp at the manse door. But
- I would rather hope that ye shall be well received, as your poor
- father forecast for you, and for anything that I ken come to be a
- great man in time. And here, Davie, laddie," he resumed, "it
- lies near upon my conscience to improve this parting, and set you
- on the right guard against the dangers of the world."
-
- Here he cast about for a comfortable seat, lighted on a big
- boulder under a birch by the trackside, sate down upon it with a
- very long, serious upper lip, and the sun now shining in upon us
- between two peaks, put his pocket-handkerchief over his cocked
- hat to shelter him. There, then, with uplifted forefinger, he
- first put me on my guard against a considerable number of
- heresies, to which I had no temptation, and urged upon me to be
- instant in my prayers and reading of the Bible. That done, he
- drew a picture of the great house that I was bound to, and how I
- should conduct myself with its inhabitants.
-
- "Be soople, Davie, in things immaterial," said he. "Bear ye this
- in mind, that, though gentle born, ye have had a country rearing.
- Dinnae shame us, Davie, dinnae shame us! In yon great, muckle
- house, with all these domestics, upper and under, show yourself
- as nice, as circumspect, as quick at the conception, and as slow
- of speech as any. As for the laird -- remember he's the laird; I
- say no more: honour to whom honour. It's a pleasure to obey a
- laird; or should be, to the young."
-
- "Well, sir," said I, "it may be; and I'll promise you I'll try to
- make it so."
-
- "Why, very well said," replied Mr. Campbell, heartily. "And now
- to come to the material, or (to make a quibble) to the
- immaterial. I have here a little packet which contains four
- things." He tugged it, as he spoke, and with some great
- difficulty, from the skirt pocket of his coat. "Of these four
- things, the first is your legal due: the little pickle money for
- your father's books and plenishing, which I have bought (as I
- have explained from the first) in the design of re-selling at a
- profit to the incoming dominie. The other three are gifties that
- Mrs. Campbell and myself would be blithe of your acceptance. The
- first, which is round, will likely please ye best at the first
- off-go; but, O Davie, laddie, it's but a drop of water in the
- sea; it'll help you but a step, and vanish like the morning. The
- second, which is flat and square and written upon, will stand by
- you through life, like a good staff for the road, and a good
- pillow to your head in sickness. And as for the last, which is
- cubical, that'll see you, it's my prayerful wish, into a better
- land."
-
- With that he got upon his feet, took off his hat, and prayed a
- little while aloud, and in affecting terms, for a young man
- setting out into the world; then suddenly took me in his arms and
- embraced me very hard; then held me at arm's length, looking at
- me with his face all working with sorrow; and then whipped about,
- and crying good-bye to me, set off backward by the way that we
- had come at a sort of jogging run. It might have been laughable
- to another; but I was in no mind to laugh. I watched him as long
- as he was in sight; and he never stopped hurrying, nor once
- looked back. Then it came in upon my mind that this was all his
- sorrow at my departure; and my conscience smote me hard and fast,
- because I, for my part, was overjoyed to get away out of that
- quiet country-side, and go to a great, busy house, among rich and
- respected gentlefolk of my own name and blood.
-
- "Davie, Davie," I thought, "was ever seen such black ingratitude?
- Can you forget old favours and old friends at the mere whistle of
- a name? Fie, fie; think shame."
-
- And I sat down on the boulder the good man had just left, and
- opened the parcel to see the nature of my gifts. That which he
- had called cubical, I had never had much doubt of; sure enough it
- was a little Bible, to carry in a plaid-neuk. That which he had
- called round, I found to be a shilling piece; and the third,
- which was to help me so wonderfully both in health and sickness
- all the days of my life, was a little piece of coarse yellow
- paper, written upon thus in red ink:
-
-
- "TO MAKE LILLY OF THE VALLEY WATER.--Take the flowers of lilly of
- the valley and distil them in sack, and drink a spooneful or two
- as there is occasion. It restores speech to those that have the
- dumb palsey. It is good against the Gout; it comforts the heart
- and strengthens the memory; and the flowers, put into a Glasse,
- close stopt, and set into ane hill of ants for a month, then take
- it out, and you will find a liquor which comes from the flowers,
- which keep in a vial; it is good, ill or well, and whether man or
- woman."
-
-
-
- And then, in the minister's own hand, was added:
-
- "Likewise for sprains, rub it in; and for the cholic, a great
- spooneful in the hour."
-
-
- To be sure, I laughed over this; but it was rather tremulous
- laughter; and I was glad to get my bundle on my staff's end and
- set out over the ford and up the hill upon the farther side;
- till, just as I came on the green drove-road running wide through
- the heather, I took my last look of Kirk Essendean, the trees
- about the manse, and the big rowans in the kirkyard where my
- father and my mother lay.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- I COME TO MY JOURNEY'S END
-
- On the forenoon of the second day, coming to the top of a hill, I
- saw all the country fall away before me down to the sea; and in
- the midst of this descent, on a long ridge, the city of Edinburgh
- smoking like a kiln. There was a flag upon the castle, and ships
- moving or lying anchored in the firth; both of which, for as far
- away as they were, I could distinguish clearly; and both brought
- my country heart into my mouth.
-
- Presently after, I came by a house where a shepherd lived, and
- got a rough direction for the neighbourhood of Cramond; and so,
- from one to another, worked my way to the westward of the capital
- by Colinton, till I came out upon the Glasgow road. And there,
- to my great pleasure and wonder, I beheld a regiment marching to
- the fifes, every foot in time; an old red-faced general on a grey
- horse at the one end, and at the other the company of Grenadiers,
- with their Pope's-hats. The pride of life seemed to mount into
- my brain at the sight of the red coats and the hearing of that
- merry music.
-
- A little farther on, and I was told I was in Cramond parish, and
- began to substitute in my inquiries the name of the house of
- Shaws. It was a word that seemed to surprise those of whom I
- sought my way. At first I thought the plainness of my
- appearance, in my country habit, and that all dusty from the
- road, consorted ill with the greatness of the place to which I
- was bound. But after two, or maybe three, had given me the same
- look and the same answer, I began to take it in my head there was
- something strange about the Shaws itself.
-
- The better to set this fear at rest, I changed the form of my
- inquiries; and spying an honest fellow coming along a lane on the
- shaft of his cart, I asked him if he had ever heard tell of a
- house they called the house of Shaws.
-
- He stopped his cart and looked at me, like the others.
-
- "Ay" said he. "What for?"
-
- "It's a great house?" I asked.
-
- "Doubtless," says he. "The house is a big, muckle house."
-
- "Ay," said I, "but the folk that are in it?"
-
- "Folk?" cried he. "Are ye daft? There's nae folk there -- to
- call folk."
-
- "What?" say I; "not Mr. Ebenezer?"
-
- "Ou, ay" says the man; "there's the laird, to be sure, if it's
- him you're wanting. What'll like be your business, mannie?"
-
- "I was led to think that I would get a situation," I said,
- looking as modest as I could.
-
- "What?" cries the carter, in so sharp a note that his very horse
- started; and then, "Well, mannie," he added, "it's nane of my
- affairs; but ye seem a decent-spoken lad; and if ye'll take a
- word from me, ye'll keep clear of the Shaws."
-
- The next person I came across was a dapper little man in a
- beautiful white wig, whom I saw to be a barber on his rounds; and
- knowing well that barbers were great gossips, I asked him plainly
- what sort of a man was Mr. Balfour of the Shaws.
-
- "Hoot, hoot, hoot," said the barber, "nae kind of a man, nae kind
- of a man at all;" and began to ask me very shrewdly what my
- business was; but I was more than a match for him at that, and he
- went on to his next customer no wiser than he came.
-
- I cannot well describe the blow this dealt to my illusions. The
- more indistinct the accusations were, the less I liked them, for
- they left the wider field to fancy. What kind of a great house
- was this, that all the parish should start and stare to be asked
- the way to it? or what sort of a gentleman, that his ill-fame
- should be thus current on the wayside? If an hour's walking would
- have brought me back to Essendean, had left my adventure then and
- there, and returned to Mr. Campbell's. But when I had come so
- far a way already, mere shame would not suffer me to desist till
- I had put the matter to the touch of proof; I was bound, out of
- mere self-respect, to carry it through; and little as I liked the
- sound of what I heard, and slow as I began to travel, I still
- kept asking my way and still kept advancing.
-
- It was drawing on to sundown when I met a stout, dark,
- sour-looking woman coming trudging down a hill; and she, when I
- had put my usual question, turned sharp about, accompanied me
- back to the summit she had just left, and pointed to a great bulk
- of building standing very bare upon a green in the bottom of the
- next valley. The country was pleasant round about, running in
- low hills, pleasantly watered and wooded, and the crops, to my
- eyes, wonderfully good; but the house itself appeared to be a
- kind of ruin; no road led up to it; no smoke arose from any of
- the chimneys; nor was there any semblance of a garden. My heart
- sank. "That!" I cried.
-
- The woman's face lit up with a malignant anger. "That is the
- house of Shaws!" she cried. "Blood built it; blood stopped the
- building of it; blood shall bring it down. See here!" she cried
- again -- "I spit upon the ground, and crack my thumb at it! Black
- be its fall! If ye see the laird, tell him what ye hear; tell him
- this makes the twelve hunner and nineteen time that Jennet
- Clouston has called down the curse on him and his house, byre and
- stable, man, guest, and master, wife, miss, or bairn -- black,
- black be their fall!"
-
- And the woman, whose voice had risen to a kind of eldritch
- sing-song, turned with a skip, and was gone. I stood where she
- left me, with my hair on end. In those days folk still believed
- in witches and trembled at a curse; and this one, falling so pat,
- like a wayside omen, to arrest me ere I carried out my purpose,
- took the pith out of my legs.
-
- I sat me down and stared at the house of Shaws. The more I
- looked, the pleasanter that country-side appeared; being all set
- with hawthorn bushes full of flowers; the fields dotted with
- sheep; a fine flight of rooks in the sky; and every sign of a
- kind soil and climate; and yet the barrack in the midst of it
- went sore against my fancy.
-
- Country folk went by from the fields as I sat there on the side
- of the ditch, but I lacked the spirit to give them a good-e'en.
- At last the sun went down, and then, right up against the yellow
- sky, I saw a scroll of smoke go mounting, not much thicker, as it
- seemed to me, than the smoke of a candle; but still there it was,
- and meant a fire, and warmth, and cookery, and some living
- inhabitant that must have lit it; and this comforted my heart.
-
- So I set forward by a little faint track in the grass that led in
- my direction. It was very faint indeed to be the only way to a
- place of habitation; yet I saw no other. Presently it brought me
- to stone uprights, with an unroofed lodge beside them, and coats
- of arms upon the top. A main entrance it was plainly meant to
- be, but never finished; instead of gates of wrought iron, a pair
- of hurdles were tied across with a straw rope; and as there were
- no park walls, nor any sign of avenue, the track that I was
- following passed on the right hand of the pillars, and went
- wandering on toward the house.
-
- The nearer I got to that, the drearier it appeared. It seemed
- like the one wing of a house that had never been finished. What
- should have been the inner end stood open on the upper floors,
- and showed against the sky with steps and stairs of uncompleted
- masonry. Many of the windows were unglazed, and bats flew in and
- out like doves out of a dove-cote.
-
- The night had begun to fall as I got close; and in three of the
- lower windows, which were very high up and narrow, and well
- barred, the changing light of a little fire began to glimmer.
- Was this the palace I had been coming to? Was it within these
- walls that I was to seek new friends and begin great fortunes?
- Why, in my father's house on Essen-Waterside, the fire and the
- bright lights would show a mile away, and the door open to a
- beggar's knock!
-
- I came forward cautiously, and giving ear as I came, heard some
- one rattling with dishes, and a little dry, eager cough that came
- in fits; but there was no sound of speech, and not a dog barked.
-
- The door, as well as I could see it in the dim light, was a great
- piece of wood all studded with nails; and I lifted my hand with a
- faint heart under my jacket, and knocked once. Then I stood and
- waited. The house had fallen into a dead silence; a whole minute
- passed away, and nothing stirred but the bats overhead. I
- knocked again, and hearkened again. By this time my ears had
- grown so accustomed to the quiet, that I could hear the ticking
- of the clock inside as it slowly counted out the seconds; but
- whoever was in that house kept deadly still, and must have held
- his breath.
-
- I was in two minds whether to run away; but anger got the upper
- hand, and I began instead to rain kicks and buffets on the door,
- and to shout out aloud for Mr. Balfour. I was in full career,
- when I heard the cough right overhead, and jumping back and
- looking up, beheld a man's head in a tall nightcap, and the bell
- mouth of a blunderbuss, at one of the first-storey windows.
-
- "It's loaded," said a voice.
-
- "I have come here with a letter," I said, "to Mr. Ebenezer
- Balfour of Shaws. Is he here?"
-
- "From whom is it?" asked the man with the blunderbuss.
-
- "That is neither here nor there," said I, for I was growing very
- wroth.
-
- "Well," was the reply, "ye can put it down upon the doorstep, and
- be off with ye."
-
- "I will do no such thing," I cried. "I will deliver it into Mr.
- Balfour's hands, as it was meant I should. It is a letter of
- introduction."
-
- "A what?" cried the voice, sharply.
-
- I repeated what I had said.
-
- "Who are ye, yourself?" was the next question, after a
- considerable pause.
-
- "I am not ashamed of my name," said I. "They call me David
- Balfour."
-
- At that, I made sure the man started, for I heard the blunderbuss
- rattle on the window-sill; and it was after quite a long pause,
- and with a curious change of voice, that the next question
- followed:
-
- "Is your father dead?"
-
- I was so much surprised at this, that I could find no voice to
- answer, but stood staring.
-
- "Ay" the man resumed, "he'll be dead, no doubt; and that'll be
- what brings ye chapping to my door." Another pause, and then
- defiantly, "Well, man," he said, "I'll let ye in;" and he
- disappeared from the window.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- I MAKE ACQUAINTANCE OF MY UNCLE
-
- Presently there came a great rattling of chains and bolts, and
- the door was cautiously opened and shut to again behind me as
- soon as I had passed.
-
- "Go into the kitchen and touch naething," said the voice; and
- while the person of the house set himself to replacing the
- defences of the door, I groped my way forward and entered the
- kitchen.
-
- The fire had burned up fairly bright, and showed me the barest
- room I think I ever put my eyes on. Half-a-dozen dishes stood
- upon the shelves; the table was laid for supper with a bowl of
- porridge, a horn spoon, and a cup of small beer. Besides what I
- have named, there was not another thing in that great,
- stone-vaulted, empty chamber but lockfast chests arranged along
- the wall and a corner cupboard with a padlock.
-
- As soon as the last chain was up, the man rejoined me. He was a
- mean, stooping, narrow-shouldered, clay-faced creature; and his
- age might have been anything between fifty and seventy. His
- nightcap was of flannel, and so was the nightgown that he wore,
- instead of coat and waistcoat, over his ragged shirt. He was
- long unshaved; but what most distressed and even daunted me, he
- would neither take his eyes away from me nor look me fairly in
- the face. What he was, whether by trade or birth, was more than
- I could fathom; but he seemed most like an old, unprofitable
- serving-man, who should have been left in charge of that big
- house upon board wages.
-
- "Are ye sharp-set?" he asked, glancing at about the level of my
- knee. "Ye can eat that drop parritch?"
-
- I said I feared it was his own supper.
-
- "O," said he, "I can do fine wanting it. I'll take the ale,
- though, for it slockens[1] my cough." He drank the cup about
- half out, still keeping an eye upon me as he drank; and then
- suddenly held out his hand. "Let's see the letter," said he.
-
- [1] Moistens.
-
-
- I told him the letter was for Mr. Balfour; not for him.
-
- "And who do ye think I am?" says he. "Give me Alexander's
- letter."
-
- "You know my father's name?"
-
- "It would be strange if I didnae," he returned, "for he was my
- born brother; and little as ye seem to like either me or my
- house, or my good parritch, I'm your born uncle, Davie, my man,
- and you my born nephew. So give us the letter, and sit down and
- fill your kyte."
-
- If I had been some years younger, what with shame, weariness, and
- disappointment, I believe I had burst into tears. As it was, I
- could find no words, neither black nor white, but handed him
- the letter, and sat down to the porridge with as little appetite
- for meat as ever a young man had.
-
- Meanwhile, my uncle, stooping over the fire, turned the letter
- over and over in his hands.
-
- "Do ye ken what's in it?" he asked, suddenly.
-
- "You see for yourself, sir," said I, "that the seal has not been
- broken."
-
- "Ay," said he, "but what brought you here?"
-
- "To give the letter," said I.
-
- "No," says he, cunningly, "but ye'll have had some hopes, nae
- doubt?"
-
- "I confess, sir," said I, "when I was told that I had kinsfolk
- well-to-do, I did indeed indulge the hope that they might help me
- in my life. But I am no beggar; I look for no favours at your
- hands, and I want none that are not freely given. For as poor as
- I appear, I have friends of my own that will be blithe to help
- me."
-
- "Hoot-toot!" said Uncle Ebenezer, "dinnae fly up in the snuff at
- me. We'll agree fine yet. And, Davie, my man, if you're done
- with that bit parritch, I could just take a sup of it myself.
- Ay," he continued, as soon as he had ousted me from the stool and
- spoon, "they're fine, halesome food -- they're grand food,
- parritch." He murmured a little grace to himself and fell to.
- "Your father was very fond of his meat, I mind; he was a hearty,
- if not a great eater; but as for me, I could never do mair than
- pyke at food." He took a pull at the small beer, which probably
- reminded him of hospitable duties, for his next speech ran thus:
- "If ye're dry ye'll find water behind the door."
-
- To this I returned no answer, standing stiffly on my two feet,
- and looking down upon my uncle with a mighty angry heart. He, on
- his part, continued to eat like a man under some pressure of
- time, and to throw out little darting glances now at my shoes and
- now at my home-spun stockings. Once only, when he had ventured
- to look a little higher, our eyes met; and no thief taken with a
- hand in a man's pocket could have shown more lively signals of
- distress. This set me in a muse, whether his timidity arose from
- too long a disuse of any human company; and whether perhaps, upon
- a little trial, it might pass off, and my uncle change into an
- altogether different man. From this I was awakened by his sharp
- voice.
-
- "Your father's been long dead?" he asked.
-
- "Three weeks, sir," said I.
-
- "He was a secret man, Alexander -- a secret, silent man," he
- continued. "He never said muckle when he was young. He'll never
- have spoken muckle of me?"
-
- "I never knew, sir, till you told it me yourself, that he had any
- brother."
-
- "Dear me, dear me!" said Ebenezer. "Nor yet of Shaws, I dare
- say?"
-
- "Not so much as the name, sir," said I.
-
- "To think o' that!" said he. "A strange nature of a man!" For
- all that, he seemed singularly satisfied, but whether with
- himself, or me, or with this conduct of my father's, was more
- than I could read. Certainly, however, he seemed to be
- outgrowing that distaste, or ill-will, that he had conceived at
- first against my person; for presently he jumped up, came across
- the room behind me, and hit me a smack upon the shoulder. "We'll
- agree fine yet!" he cried. "I'm just as glad I let you in. And
- now come awa' to your bed."
-
- To my surprise, he lit no lamp or candle, but set forth into the
- dark passage, groped his way, breathing deeply, up a flight of
- steps, and paused before a door, which he unlocked. I was close
- upon his heels, having stumbled after him as best I might; and
- then he bade me go in, for that was my chamber. I did as he bid,
- but paused after a few steps, and begged a light to go to bed
- with.
-
- "Hoot-toot!" said Uncle Ebenezer, "there's a fine moon."
-
- "Neither moon nor star, sir, and pit-mirk,"[2] said I. "I cannae
- see the bed."
-
- [2] Dark as the pit.
-
-
- "Hoot-toot, hoot-toot!" said he. "Lights in a house is a thing I
- dinnae agree with. I'm unco feared of fires. Good-night to ye,
- Davie, my man." And before I had time to add a further protest,
- he pulled the door to, and I heard him lock me in from the
- outside.
-
- I did not know whether to laugh or cry. The room was as cold as
- a well, and the bed, when I had found my way to it, as damp as a
- peat-hag; but by good fortune I had caught up my bundle and my
- plaid, and rolling myself in the latter, I lay down upon the
- floor under lee of the big bedstead, and fell speedily asleep.
-
- With the first peep of day I opened my eyes, to find myself in a
- great chamber, hung with stamped leather, furnished with fine
- embroidered furniture, and lit by three fair windows. Ten years
- ago, or perhaps twenty, it must have been as pleasant a room to
- lie down or to awake in as a man could wish; but damp, dirt,
- disuse, and the mice and spiders had done their worst since then.
- Many of the window-panes, besides, were broken; and indeed this
- was so common a feature in that house, that I believe my uncle
- must at some time have stood a siege from his indignant
- neighbours -- perhaps with Jennet Clouston at their head.
-
- Meanwhile the sun was shining outside; and being very cold in
- that miserable room, I knocked and shouted till my gaoler came
- and let me out. He carried me to the back of the house, where
- was a draw-well, and told me to "wash my face there, if I
- wanted;" and when that was done, I made the best of my own way
- back to the kitchen, where he had lit the fire and was making the
- porridge. The table was laid with two bowls and two horn spoons,
- but the same single measure of small beer. Perhaps my eye rested
- on this particular with some surprise, and perhaps my uncle
- observed it; for he spoke up as if in answer to my thought,
- asking me if I would like to drink ale -- for so he called it.
-
- I told him such was my habit, but not to put himself about.
-
- "Na, na," said he; "I'll deny you nothing in reason."
-
- He fetched another cup from the shelf; and then, to my great
- surprise, instead of drawing more beer, he poured an accurate
- half from one cup to the other. There was a kind of nobleness in
- this that took my breath away; if my uncle was certainly a miser,
- he was one of that thorough breed that goes near to make the vice
- respectable.
-
- When we had made an end of our meal, my uncle Ebenezer unlocked a
- drawer, and drew out of it a clay pipe and a lump of tobacco,
- from which he cut one fill before he locked it up again. Then he
- sat down in the sun at one of the windows and silently smoked.
- From time to time his eyes came coasting round to me, and he shot
- out one of his questions. Once it was, "And your mother?" and
- when I had told him that she, too, was dead, "Ay, she was a
- bonnie lassie!" Then, after another long pause, "Whae were these
- friends o' yours?"
-
- I told him they were different gentlemen of the name of Campbell;
- though, indeed, there was only one, and that the minister, that
- had ever taken the least note of me; but I began to think my
- uncle made too light of my position, and finding myself all alone
- with him, I did not wish him to suppose me helpless.
-
- He seemed to turn this over in his mind; and then, "Davie, my
- man," said he, "ye've come to the right bit when ye came to your
- uncle Ebenezer. I've a great notion of the family, and I mean to
- do the right by you; but while I'm taking a bit think to mysel'
- of what's the best thing to put you to -- whether the law, or the
- meenistry, or maybe the army, whilk is what boys are fondest of
- -- I wouldnae like the Balfours to be humbled before a wheen
- Hieland Campbells, and I'll ask you to keep your tongue within
- your teeth. Nae letters; nae messages; no kind of word to
- onybody; or else -- there's my door."
-
- "Uncle Ebenezer," said I, "I've no manner of reason to suppose
- you mean anything but well by me. For all that, I would have you
- to know that I have a pride of my own. It was by no will of mine
- that I came seeking you; and if you show me your door again, I'll
- take you at the word."
-
- He seemed grievously put out. "Hoots-toots," said he, "ca'
- cannie, man -- ca' cannie! Bide a day or two. I'm nae warlock,
- to find a fortune for you in the bottom of a parritch bowl; but
- just you give me a day or two, and say naething to naebody, and
- as sure as sure, I'll do the right by you."
-
- "Very well," said I, "enough said. If you want to help me,
- there's no doubt but I'll be glad of it, and none but I'll be
- grateful."
-
- It seemed to me (too soon, I dare say) that I was getting the
- upper hand of my uncle; and I began next to say that I must have
- the bed and bedclothes aired and put to sun-dry; for nothing
- would make me sleep in such a pickle.
-
- "Is this my house or yours?" said he, in his keen voice, and then
- all of a sudden broke off. "Na, na," said he, "I didnae mean
- that. What's mine is yours, Davie, my man, and what's yours is
- mine. Blood's thicker than water; and there's naebody but you
- and me that ought the name." And then on he rambled about the
- family, and its ancient greatness, and his father that began to
- enlarge the house, and himself that stopped the building as a
- sinful waste; and this put it in my head to give him Jennet
- Clouston's message.
-
- "The limmer!" he cried. "Twelve hunner and fifteen -- that's
- every day since I had the limmer rowpit![3] Dod, David, I'll have
- her roasted on red peats before I'm by with it! A witch -- a
- proclaimed witch! I'll aff and see the session clerk."
-
- [3] Sold up.
-
-
- And with that he opened a chest, and got out a very old and
- well-preserved blue coat and waistcoat, and a good enough beaver
- hat, both without lace. These he threw on any way, and taking a
- staff from the cupboard, locked all up again, and was for setting
- out, when a thought arrested him.
-
- "I cannae leave you by yoursel' in the house," said he. "I'll
- have to lock you out."
-
- The blood came to my face. "If you lock me out," I said, "it'll
- be the last you'll see of me in friendship."
-
- He turned very pale, and sucked his mouth in.
-
- "This is no the way" he said, looking wickedly at a corner of the
- floor -- "this is no the way to win my favour, David."
-
- "Sir," says I, "with a proper reverence for your age and our
- common blood, I do not value your favour at a boddle's purchase.
- I was brought up to have a good conceit of myself; and if you
- were all the uncle, and all the family, I had in the world ten
- times over, I wouldn't buy your liking at such prices."
-
- Uncle Ebenezer went and looked out of the window for awhile. I
- could see him all trembling and twitching, like a man with palsy.
- But when he turned round, he had a smile upon his face.
-
- "Well, well," said he, "we must bear and forbear. I'll no go;
- that's all that's to be said of it."
-
- "Uncle Ebenezer," I said, "I can make nothing out of this. You
- use me like a thief; you hate to have me in this house; you let
- me see it, every word and every minute: it's not possible that
- you can like me; and as for me, I've spoken to you as I never
- thought to speak to any man. Why do you seek to keep me, then?
- Let me gang back -- let me gang back to the friends I have, and
- that like me!"
-
- "Na, na; na, na," he said, very earnestly. "I like you fine;
- we'll agree fine yet; and for the honour of the house I couldnae
- let you leave the way ye came. Bide here quiet, there's a good
- lad; just you bide here quiet a bittie, and ye'll find that we
- agree."
-
- "Well, sir," said I, after I had thought the matter out in
- silence, "I'll stay awhile. It's more just I should be helped by
- my own blood than strangers; and if we don't agree, I'll do my
- best it shall be through no fault of mine."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- I RUN A GREAT DANGER IN THE HOUSE OF SHAWS
-
- For a day that was begun so ill, the day passed fairly well. We
- had the porridge cold again at noon, and hot porridge at night;
- porridge and small beer was my uncle's diet. He spoke but
- little, and that in the same way as before, shooting a question
- at me after a long silence; and when I sought to lead him to talk
- about my future, slipped out of it again. In a room next door to
- the kitchen, where he suffered me to go, I found a great number
- of books, both Latin and English, in which I took great pleasure
- all the afternoon. Indeed, the time passed so lightly in this
- good company, that I began to be almost reconciled to my
- residence at Shaws; and nothing but the sight of my uncle, and
- his eyes playing hide and seek with mine, revived the force of my
- distrust.
-
- One thing I discovered, which put me in some doubt. This was an
- entry on the fly-leaf of a chap-book (one of Patrick Walker's)
- plainly written by my father's hand and thus conceived: "To my
- brother Ebenezer on his fifth birthday" Now, what puzzled me was
- this: That, as my father was of course the younger brother, he
- must either have made some strange error, or he must have
- written, before he was yet five, an excellent, clear manly hand
- of writing.
-
- I tried to get this out of my head; but though I took down many
- interesting authors, old and new, history, poetry, and
- story-book, this notion of my father's hand of writing stuck to
- me; and when at length I went back into the kitchen, and sat down
- once more to porridge and small beer, the first thing I said to
- Uncle Ebenezer was to ask him if my father had not been very
- quick at his book.
-
- "Alexander? No him!" was the reply. "I was far quicker mysel'; I
- was a clever chappie when I was young. Why, I could read as soon
- as he could."
-
- This puzzled me yet more; and a thought coming into my head, I
- asked if he and my father had been twins.
-
- He jumped upon his stool, and the horn spoon fell out of his hand
- upon the floor. "What gars ye ask that?" he said, and he caught
- me by the breast of the jacket, and looked this time straight
- into my eyes: his own were little and light, and bright like a
- bird's, blinking and winking strangely.
-
- "What do you mean?" I asked, very calmly, for I was far stronger
- than he, and not easily frightened. "Take your hand from my
- jacket. This is no way to behave."
-
- My uncle seemed to make a great effort upon himself. "Dod man,
- David," he said, "ye should-nae speak to me about your father.
- That's where the mistake is." He sat awhile and shook, blinking
- in his plate: "He was all the brother that ever I had," he added,
- but with no heart in his voice; and then he caught up his spoon
- and fell to supper again, but still shaking.
-
- Now this last passage, this laying of hands upon my person and
- sudden profession of love for my dead father, went so clean
- beyond my comprehension that it put me into both fear and hope.
- On the one hand, I began to think my uncle was perhaps insane and
- might be dangerous; on the other, there came up into my mind
- (quite unbidden by me and even discouraged) a story like some
- ballad I had heard folk singing, of a poor lad that was a
- rightful heir and a wicked kinsman that tried to keep him from
- his own. For why should my uncle play a part with a relative
- that came, almost a beggar, to his door, unless in his heart he
- had some cause to fear him?
-
- With this notion, all unacknowledged, but nevertheless getting
- firmly settled in my head, I now began to imitate his covert
- looks; so that we sat at table like a cat and a mouse, each
- stealthily observing the other. Not another word had he to say
- to me, black or white, but was busy turning something secretly
- over in his mind; and the longer we sat and the more I looked at
- him, the more certain I became that the something was unfriendly
- to myself.
-
- When he had cleared the platter, he got out a single pipeful of
- tobacco, just as in the morning, turned round a stool into the
- chimney corner, and sat awhile smoking, with his back to me.
-
- "Davie," he said, at length, "I've been thinking;" then he
- paused, and said it again. "There's a wee bit siller that I half
- promised ye before ye were born," he continued; "promised it to
- your father. O, naething legal, ye understand; just gentlemen
- daffing at their wine. Well, I keepit that bit money separate --
- it was a great expense, but a promise is a promise -- and it has
- grown by now to be a matter of just precisely -- just exactly" --
- and here he paused and stumbled -- "of just exactly forty
- pounds!" This last he rapped out with a sidelong glance over his
- shoulder; and the next moment added, almost with a scream,
- "Scots!"
-
- The pound Scots being the same thing as an English shilling, the
- difference made by this second thought was considerable; I could
- see, besides, that the whole story was a lie, invented with some
- end which it puzzled me to guess; and I made no attempt to
- conceal the tone of raillery in which I answered --
-
- "O, think again, sir! Pounds sterling, I believe!"
-
- "That's what I said," returned my uncle: "pounds sterling! And if
- you'll step out-by to the door a minute, just to see what kind of
- a night it is, I'll get it out to ye and call ye in again."
-
- I did his will, smiling to myself in my contempt that he should
- think I was so easily to be deceived. It was a dark night, with
- a few stars low down; and as I stood just outside the door, I
- heard a hollow moaning of wind far off among the hills. I said
- to myself there was something thundery and changeful in the
- weather, and little knew of what a vast importance that should
- prove to me before the evening passed.
-
- When I was called in again, my uncle counted out into my hand
- seven and thirty golden guinea pieces; the rest was in his hand,
- in small gold and silver; but his heart failed him there, and he
- crammed the change into his pocket.
-
- "There," said he, "that'll show you! I'm a queer man, and strange
- wi' strangers; but my word is my bond, and there's the proof of
- it."
-
- Now, my uncle seemed so miserly that I was struck dumb by this
- sudden generosity, and could find no words in which to thank him.
-
- "No a word!" said he. "Nae thanks; I want nae thanks. I do my
- duty. I'm no saying that everybody would have, done it; but for
- my part (though I'm a careful body, too) it's a pleasure to me to
- do the right by my brother's son; and it's a pleasure to me to
- think that now we'll agree as such near friends should."
-
- I spoke him in return as handsomely as I was able; but all the
- while I was wondering what would come next, and why he had parted
- with his precious guineas; for as to the reason he had given, a
- baby would have refused it.
-
- Presently he looked towards me sideways.
-
- "And see here," says he, "tit for tat."
-
- I told him I was ready to prove my gratitude in any reasonable
- degree, and then waited, looking for some monstrous demand. And
- yet, when at last he plucked up courage to speak, it was only to
- tell me (very properly, as I thought) that he was growing old and
- a little broken, and that he would expect me to help him with the
- house and the bit garden.
-
- I answered, and expressed my readiness to serve.
-
- "Well," he said, "let's begin." He pulled out of his pocket a
- rusty key. "There," says he, "there's the key of the stair-tower
- at the far end of the house. Ye can only win into it from the
- outside, for that part of the house is no finished. Gang ye in
- there, and up the stairs, and bring me down the chest that's at
- the top. There's papers in't," he added.
-
- "Can I have a light, sir?" said I.
-
- "Na," said he, very cunningly. "Nae lights in my house."
-
- "Very well, sir," said I. "Are the stairs good?"
-
- "They're grand," said he; and then, as I was going, "Keep to the
- wall," he added; "there's nae bannisters. But the stairs are
- grand underfoot."
-
- Out I went into the night. The wind was still moaning in the
- distance, though never a breath of it came near the house of
- Shaws. It had fallen blacker than ever; and I was glad to feel
- along the wall, till I came the length of the stairtower door at
- the far end of the unfinished wing. I had got the key into the
- keyhole and had just turned it, when all upon a sudden, without
- sound of wind or thunder, the whole sky lighted up with wild fire
- and went black again. I had to put my hand over my eyes to get
- back to the colour of the darkness; and indeed I was already half
- blinded when I stepped into the tower.
-
- It was so dark inside, it seemed a body could scarce breathe; but
- I pushed out with foot and hand, and presently struck the wall
- with the one, and the lowermost round of the stair with the
- other. The wall, by the touch, was of fine hewn stone; the steps
- too, though somewhat steep and narrow, were of polished
- masonwork, and regular and solid underfoot. Minding my uncle's
- word about the bannisters, I kept close to the tower side, and
- felt my way in the pitch darkness with a beating heart.
-
- The house of Shaws stood some five full storeys high, not
- counting lofts. Well, as I advanced, it seemed to me the stair
- grew airier and a thought more lightsome; and I was wondering
- what might be the cause of this change, when a second blink of
- the summer lightning came and went. If I did not cry out, it was
- because fear had me by the throat; and if I did not fall, it was
- more by Heaven's mercy than my own strength. It was not only
- that the flash shone in on every side through breaches in the
- wall, so that I seemed to be clambering aloft upon an open
- scaffold, but the same passing brightness showed me the steps
- were of unequal length, and that one of my feet rested that
- moment within two inches of the well.
-
- This was the grand stair! I thought; and with the thought, a gust
- of a kind of angry courage came into my heart. My uncle had sent
- me here, certainly to run great risks, perhaps to die. I swore I
- would settle that "perhaps," if I should break my neck for it;
- got me down upon my hands and knees; and as slowly as a snail,
- feeling before me every inch, and testing the solidity of every
- stone, I continued to ascend the stair. The darkness, by
- contrast with the flash, appeared to have redoubled; nor was that
- all, for my ears were now troubled and my mind confounded by a
- great stir of bats in the top part of the tower, and the foul
- beasts, flying downwards, sometimes beat about my face and body.
-
- The tower, I should have said, was square; and in every corner
- the step was made of a great stone of a different shape to join
- the flights. Well, I had come close to one of these turns, when,
- feeling forward as usual, my hand slipped upon an edge and found
- nothing but emptiness beyond it. The stair had been carried no
- higher; to set a stranger mounting it in the darkness was to send
- him straight to his death; and (although, thanks to the lightning
- and my own precautions, I was safe enough) the mere thought of
- the peril in which I might have stood, and the dreadful height I
- might have fallen from, brought out the sweat upon my body and
- relaxed my joints.
-
- But I knew what I wanted now, and turned and groped my way down
- again, with a wonderful anger in my heart. About half-way down,
- the wind sprang up in a clap and shook the tower, and died again;
- the rain followed; and before I had reached the ground level it
- fell in buckets. I put out my head into the storm, and looked
- along towards the kitchen. The door, which I had shut behind me
- when I left, now stood open, and shed a little glimmer of light;
- and I thought I could see a figure standing in the rain, quite
- still, like a man hearkening. And then there came a blinding
- flash, which showed me my uncle plainly, just where I had fancied
- him to stand; and hard upon the heels of it, a great tow-row of
- thunder.
-
- Now, whether my uncle thought the crash to be the sound of my
- fall, or whether he heard in it God's voice denouncing murder, I
- will leave you to guess. Certain it is, at least, that he was
- seized on by a kind of panic fear, and that he ran into the house
- and left the door open behind him. I followed as softly as I
- could, and, coming unheard into the kitchen, stood and watched
- him.
-
- He had found time to open the corner cupboard and bring out a
- great case bottle of aqua vitae, and now sat with his back
- towards me at the table. Ever and again he would be seized with
- a fit of deadly shuddering and groan aloud, and carrying the
- bottle to his lips, drink down the raw spirits by the mouthful.
-
- I stepped forward, came close behind him where he sat, and
- suddenly clapping my two hands down upon his shoulders -- "Ah!"
- cried I.
-
- My uncle gave a kind of broken cry like a sheep's bleat, flung up
- his arms, and tumbled to the floor like a dead man. I was
- somewhat shocked at this; but I had myself to look to first of
- all, and did not hesitate to let him lie as he had fallen. The
- keys were hanging in the cupboard; and it was my design to
- furnish myself with arms before my uncle should come again to his
- senses and the power of devising evil. In the cupboard were a
- few bottles, some apparently of medicine; a great many bills and
- other papers, which I should willingly enough have rummaged, had
- I had the time; and a few necessaries that were nothing to my
- purpose. Thence I turned to the chests. The first was full of
- meal; the second of moneybags and papers tied into sheaves; in
- the third, with many other things (and these for the most part
- clothes) I found a rusty, ugly-looking Highland dirk without the
- scabbard. This, then, I concealed inside my waistcoat, and
- turned to my uncle.
-
- He lay as he had fallen, all huddled, with one knee up and one
- arm sprawling abroad; his face had a strange colour of blue, and
- he seemed to have ceased breathing. Fear came on me that he was
- dead; then I got water and dashed it in his face; and with that
- he seemed to come a little to himself, working his mouth and
- fluttering his eyelids. At last he looked up and saw me, and
- there came into his eyes a terror that was not of this world.
-
- "Come, come," said I; "sit up."
-
- "Are ye alive?" he sobbed. "O man, are ye alive?"
-
- "That am I," said I. "Small thanks to you!"
-
- He had begun to seek for his breath with deep sighs. "The blue
- phial," said he -- "in the aumry -- the blue phial." His breath
- came slower still.
-
- I ran to the cupboard, and, sure enough, found there a blue phial
- of medicine, with the dose written on it on a paper, and this I
- administered to him with what speed I might.
-
- "It's the trouble," said he, reviving a little; "I have a
- trouble, Davie. It's the heart."
-
- I set him on a chair and looked at him. It is true I felt some
- pity for a man that looked so sick, but I was full besides of
- righteous anger; and I numbered over before him the points on
- which I wanted explanation: why he lied to me at every word; why
- he feared that I should leave him; why he disliked it to be
- hinted that he and my father were twins -- "Is that because it is
- true?" I asked; why he had given me money to which I was
- convinced I had no claim; and, last of all, why he had tried to
- kill me. He heard me all through in silence; and then, in a
- broken voice, begged me to let him go to bed.
-
- "I'll tell ye the morn," he said; "as sure as death I will."
-
- And so weak was he that I could do nothing but consent. I locked
- him into his room, however, and pocketed the, key, and then
- returning to the kitchen, made up such a blaze as had not shone
- there for many a long year, and wrapping myself in my plaid, lay
- down upon the chests and fell asleep.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- I GO TO THE QUEEN'S FERRY
-
- Much rain fell in the night; and the next morning there blew a
- bitter wintry wind out of the north-west, driving scattered
- clouds. For all that, and before the sun began to peep or the
- last of the stars had vanished, I made my way to the side of the
- burn, and had a plunge in a deep whirling pool. All aglow from
- my bath, I sat down once more beside the fire, which I
- replenished, and began gravely to consider my position.
-
- There was now no doubt about my uncle's enmity; there was no
- doubt I carried my life in my hand, and he would leave no stone
- unturned that he might compass my destruction. But I was young
- and spirited, and like most lads that have been country-bred, I
- had a great opinion of my shrewdness. I had come to his door no
- better than a beggar and little more than a child; he had met me
- with treachery and violence; it would be a fine consummation to
- take the upper hand, and drive him like a herd of sheep.
-
- I sat there nursing my knee and smiling at the fire; and I saw
- myself in fancy smell out his secrets one after another, and grow
- to be that man's king and ruler. The warlock of Essendean, they
- say, had made a mirror in which men could read the future; it
- must have been of other stuff than burning coal; for in all the
- shapes and pictures that I sat and gazed at, there was never a
- ship, never a seaman with a hairy cap, never a big bludgeon for
- my silly head, or the least sign of all those tribulations that
- were ripe to fall on me.
-
- Presently, all swollen with conceit, I went up-stairs and gave my
- prisoner his liberty. He gave me good-morning civilly; and I
- gave the same to him, smiling down upon him, from the heights of
- my sufficiency. Soon we were set to breakfast, as it might have
- been the day before.
-
- "Well, sir," said I, with a jeering tone, "have you nothing more
- to say to me?" And then, as he made no articulate reply, "It will
- be time, I think, to understand each other," I continued. "You
- took me for a country Johnnie Raw, with no more mother-wit or
- courage than a porridge-stick. I took you for a good man, or no
- worse than others at the least. It seems we were both wrong.
- What cause you have to fear me, to cheat me, and to attempt my
- life--"
-
- He murmured something about a jest, and that he liked a bit of
- fun; and then, seeing me smile, changed his tone, and assured me
- he would make all clear as soon as we had breakfasted. I saw by
- his face that he had no lie ready for me, though he was hard at
- work preparing one; and I think I was about to tell him so, when
- we were interrupted by a knocking at the door.
-
- Bidding my uncle sit where he was, I went to open it, and found
- on the doorstep a half-grown boy in sea-clothes. He had no
- sooner seen me than he began to dance some steps of the
- sea-hornpipe (which I had never before heard of far less seen),
- snapping his fingers in the air and footing it right cleverly.
- For all that, he was blue with the cold; and there was something
- in his face, a look between tears and laughter, that was highly
- pathetic and consisted ill with this gaiety of manner.
-
- "What cheer, mate?" says he, with a cracked voice.
-
- I asked him soberly to name his pleasure.
-
- "O, pleasure!" says he; and then began to sing:
-
- "For it's my delight, of a shiny night,
- In the season of the year."
-
- "Well," said I, "if you have no business at all, I will even be
- so unmannerly as to shut you out."
-
- "Stay, brother!" he cried. "Have you no fun about you? or do you
- want to get me thrashed? I've brought a letter from old Heasyoasy
- to Mr. Belflower." He showed me a letter as he spoke. "And I
- say, mate," he added, "I'm mortal hungry."
-
- "Well," said I, "come into the house, and you shall have a bite
- if I go empty for it."
-
- With that I brought him in and set him down to my own place,
- where he fell-to greedily on the remains of breakfast, winking to
- me between whiles, and making many faces, which I think the poor
- soul considered manly. Meanwhile, my uncle had read the letter
- and sat thinking; then, suddenly, he got to his feet with a great
- air of liveliness, and pulled me apart into the farthest corner
- of the room.
-
- "Read that," said he, and put the letter in my hand.
-
- Here it is, lying before me as I write:
-
- "The Hawes Inn, at the Queen's Ferry.
-
- "Sir, -- I lie here with my hawser up and down, and send my
- cabin-boy to informe. If you have any further commands for
- over-seas, to-day will be the last occasion, as the wind will
- serve us well out of the firth. I will not seek to deny that I
- have had crosses with your doer,[4] Mr. Rankeillor; of which, if
- not speedily redd up, you may looke to see some losses follow. I
- have drawn a bill upon you, as per margin, and am, sir, your most
- obedt., humble servant,
- "ELIAS HOSEASON."
-
- [4] Agent.
-
-
- "You see, Davie," resumed my uncle, as soon as he saw that I had
- done, "I have a venture with this man Hoseason, the captain of a
- trading brig, the Covenant, of Dysart. Now, if you and me was to
- walk over with yon lad, I could see the captain at the Hawes, or
- maybe on board the Covenant if there was papers to be signed; and
- so far from a loss of time, we can jog on to the lawyer, Mr.
- Rankeillor's. After a' that's come and gone, ye would be
- swier[5] to believe me upon my naked word; but ye'll believe
- Rankeillor. He's factor to half the gentry in these parts; an
- auld man, forby: highly respeckit, and he kenned your father."
-
- [5] Unwilling.
-
-
- I stood awhile and thought. I was going to some place of
- shipping, which was doubtless populous, and where my uncle durst
- attempt no violence, and, indeed, even the society of the
- cabin-boy so far protected me. Once there, I believed I could
- force on the visit to the lawyer, even if my uncle were now
- insincere in proposing it; and, perhaps, in the bottom of my
- heart, I wished a nearer view of the sea and ships. You are to
- remember I had lived all my life in the inland hills, and just
- two days before had my first sight of the firth lying like a blue
- floor, and the sailed ships moving on the face of it, no bigger
- than toys. One thing with another, I made up my mind.
-
- "Very well," says I, "let us go to the Ferry."
-
- My uncle got into his hat and coat, and buckled an old rusty
- cutlass on; and then we trod the fire out, locked the door, and
- set forth upon our walk.
-
- The wind, being in that cold quarter the north-west, blew nearly
- in our faces as we went. It was the month of June; the grass was
- all white with daisies, and the trees with blossom; but, to judge
- by our blue nails and aching wrists, the time might have been
- winter and the whiteness a December frost.
-
- Uncle Ebenezer trudged in the ditch, jogging from side to side
- like an old ploughman coming home from work. He never said a
- word the whole way; and I was thrown for talk on the cabin-boy.
- He told me his name was Ransome, and that he had followed the sea
- since he was nine, but could not say how old he was, as he had
- lost his reckoning. He showed me tattoo marks, baring his breast
- in the teeth of the wind and in spite of my remonstrances, for I
- thought it was enough to kill him; he swore horribly whenever he
- remembered, but more like a silly schoolboy than a man; and
- boasted of many wild and bad things that he had done: stealthy
- thefts, false accusations, ay, and even murder; but all with such
- a dearth of likelihood in the details, and such a weak and crazy
- swagger in the delivery, as disposed me rather to pity than to
- believe him.
-
- I asked him of the brig (which he declared was the finest ship
- that sailed) and of Captain Hoseason, in whose praises he was
- equally loud. Heasyoasy (for so he still named the skipper) was
- a man, by his account, that minded for nothing either in heaven
- or earth; one that, as people said, would "crack on all sail into
- the day of judgment;" rough, fierce, unscrupulous, and brutal;
- and all this my poor cabin-boy had taught himself to admire as
- something seamanlike and manly. He would only admit one flaw in
- his idol. "He ain't no seaman," he admitted. "That's Mr. Shuan
- that navigates the brig; he's the finest seaman in the trade,
- only for drink; and I tell you I believe it! Why, look'ere;" and
- turning down his stocking he showed me a great, raw, red wound
- that made my blood run cold. "He done that -- Mr. Shuan done
- it," he said, with an air of pride.
-
- "What!" I cried, "do you take such savage usage at his hands?
- Why, you are no slave, to be so handled!"
-
- "No," said the poor moon-calf, changing his tune at once, "and so
- he'll find. See'ere;" and he showed me a great case-knife, which
- he told me was stolen. "O," says he, "let me see him, try; I
- dare him to; I'll do for him! O, he ain't the first!" And he
- confirmed it with a poor, silly, ugly oath.
-
- I have never felt such pity for any one in this wide world as I
- felt for that half-witted creature, and it began to come over me
- that the brig Covenant (for all her pious name) was little better
- than a hell upon the seas.
-
- "Have you no friends?" said I.
-
- He said he had a father in some English seaport, I forget which.
-
- "He was a fine man, too," he said, "but he's dead."
-
- "In Heaven's name," cried I, "can you find no reputable life on
- shore?"
-
- "O, no," says he, winking and looking very sly, "they would put
- me to a trade. I know a trick worth two of that, I do!"
-
- I asked him what trade could be so dreadful as the one he
- followed, where he ran the continual peril of his life, not alone
- from wind and sea, but by the horrid cruelty of those who were
- his masters. He said it was very true; and then began to praise
- the life, and tell what a pleasure it was to get on shore with
- money in his pocket, and spend it like a man, and buy apples, and
- swagger, and surprise what he called stick-in-the-mud boys. "And
- then it's not all as bad as that," says he; "there's worse off
- than me: there's the twenty-pounders. O, laws! you should see
- them taking on. Why, I've seen a man as old as you, I dessay" --
- (to him I seemed old)-- "ah, and he had a beard, too -- well, and
- as soon as we cleared out of the river, and he had the drug out
- of his head -- my! how he cried and carried on! I made a fine
- fool of him, I tell you! And then there's little uns, too: oh,
- little by me! I tell you, I keep them in order. When we carry
- little uns, I have a rope's end of my own to wollop'em." And so
- he ran on, until it came in on me what he meant by
- twenty-pounders were those unhappy criminals who were sent
- over-seas to slavery in North America, or the still more unhappy
- innocents who were kidnapped or trepanned (as the word went) for
- private interest or vengeance.
-
- Just then we came to the top of the hill, and looked down on the
- Ferry and the Hope. The Firth of Forth (as is very well known)
- narrows at this point to the width of a good-sized river, which
- makes a convenient ferry going north, and turns the upper reach
- into a landlocked haven for all manner of ships. Right in the
- midst of the narrows lies an islet with some ruins; on the south
- shore they have built a pier for the service of the Ferry; and at
- the end of the pier, on the other side of the road, and backed
- against a pretty garden of holly-trees and hawthorns, I could see
- the building which they called the Hawes Inn.
-
- The town of Queensferry lies farther west, and the neighbourhood
- of the inn looked pretty lonely at that time of day, for the boat
- had just gone north with passengers. A skiff, however, lay
- beside the pier, with some seamen sleeping on the thwarts; this,
- as Ransome told me, was the brig's boat waiting for the captain;
- and about half a mile off, and all alone in the anchorage, he
- showed me the Covenant herself. There was a sea-going bustle on
- board; yards were swinging into place; and as the wind blew from
- that quarter, I could hear the song of the sailors as they pulled
- upon the ropes. After all I had listened to upon the way, I
- looked at that ship with an extreme abhorrence; and from the
- bottom of my heart I pitied all poor souls that were condemned to
- sail in her.
-
- We had all three pulled up on the brow of the hill; and now I
- marched across the road and addressed my uncle. "I think it
- right to tell you, sir." says I, "there's nothing that will
- bring me on board that Covenant."
-
- He seemed to waken from a dream. "Eh?" he said. "What's that?"
-
- I told him over again.
-
- "Well, well," he said, "we'll have to please ye, I suppose. But
- what are we standing here for? It's perishing cold; and if I'm no
- mistaken, they're busking the Covenant for sea."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- WHAT BEFELL AT THE QUEEN'S FERRY
-
- As soon as we came to the inn, Ransome led us up the stair to a
- small room, with a bed in it, and heated like an oven by a great
- fire of coal. At a table hard by the chimney, a tall, dark,
- sober-looking man sat writing. In spite of the heat of the room,
- he wore a thick sea-jacket, buttoned to the neck, and a tall
- hairy cap drawn down over his ears; yet I never saw any man, not
- even a judge upon the bench, look cooler, or more studious and
- self-possessed, than this ship-captain.
-
- He got to his feet at once, and coming forward, offered his large
- hand to Ebenezer. "I am proud to see you, Mr. Balfour," said he,
- in a fine deep voice, "and glad that ye are here in time. The
- wind's fair, and the tide upon the turn; we'll see the old
- coal-bucket burning on the Isle of May before to-night."
-
- "Captain Hoseason," returned my uncle, "you keep your room unco
- hot."
-
- "It's a habit I have, Mr. Balfour," said the skipper. "I'm a
- cold-rife man by my nature; I have a cold blood, sir. There's
- neither fur, nor flannel -- no, sir, nor hot rum, will warm up
- what they call the temperature. Sir, it's the same with most men
- that have been carbonadoed, as they call it, in the tropic seas."
-
- "Well, well, captain," replied my uncle, "we must all be the way
- we're made."
-
- But it chanced that this fancy of the captain's had a great share
- in my misfortunes. For though I had promised myself not to let
- my kinsman out of sight, I was both so impatient for a nearer
- look of the sea, and so sickened by the closeness of the room,
- that when he told me to "run down-stairs and play myself awhile,"
- I was fool enough to take him at his word.
-
- Away I went, therefore, leaving the two men sitting down to a
- bottle and a great mass of papers; and crossing the road in front
- of the inn, walked down upon the beach. With the wind in that
- quarter, only little wavelets, not much bigger than I had seen
- upon a lake, beat upon the shore. But the weeds were new to me
- -- some green, some brown and long, and some with little bladders
- that crackled between my fingers. Even so far up the firth, the
- smell of the sea-water was exceedingly salt and stirring; the
- Covenant, besides, was beginning to shake out her sails, which
- hung upon the yards in clusters; and the spirit of all that I
- beheld put me in thoughts of far voyages and foreign places.
-
- I looked, too, at the seamen with the skiff -- big brown fellows,
- some in shirts, some with jackets, some with coloured
- handkerchiefs about their throats, one with a brace of pistols
- stuck into his pockets, two or three with knotty bludgeons, and
- all with their case-knives. I passed the time of day with one
- that looked less desperate than his fellows, and asked him of the
- sailing of the brig. He said they would get under way as soon as
- the ebb set, and expressed his gladness to be out of a port where
- there were no taverns and fiddlers; but all with such horrifying
- oaths, that I made haste to get away from him.
-
- This threw me back on Ransome, who seemed the least wicked of
- that gang, and who soon came out of the inn and ran to me, crying
- for a bowl of punch. I told him I would give him no such thing,
- for neither he nor I was of an age for such indulgences. "But a
- glass of ale you may have, and welcome," said I. He mopped and
- mowed at me, and called me names; but he was glad to get the ale,
- for all that; and presently we were set down at a table in the
- front room of the inn, and both eating and drinking with a good
- appetite.
-
- Here it occurred to me that, as the landlord was a man of that
- county, I might do well to make a friend of him. I offered him a
- share, as was much the custom in those days; but he was far too
- great a man to sit with such poor customers as Ransome and
- myself, and he was leaving the room, when I called him back to
- ask if he knew Mr. Rankeillor.
-
- "Hoot, ay," says he, "and a very honest man. And, O, by-the-by,"
- says he, "was it you that came in with Ebenezer?" And when I had
- told him yes, "Ye'll be no friend of his?" he asked, meaning, in
- the Scottish way, that I would be no relative.
-
- I told him no, none.
-
- "I thought not," said he, "and yet ye have a kind of gliff[6] of
- Mr. Alexander."
-
- [6]Look.
-
-
- I said it seemed that Ebenezer was ill-seen in the country.
-
- "Nae doubt," said the landlord. "He's a wicked auld man, and
- there's many would like to see him girning in the tow[7]. Jennet
- Clouston and mony mair that he has harried out of house and hame.
- And yet he was ance a fine young fellow, too. But that was
- before the sough[8] gaed abroad about Mr. Alexander, that was
- like the death of him."
-
- [7]Rope.
- [8]Report.
-
-
- "And what was it?" I asked.
-
- "Ou, just that he had killed him," said the landlord. "Did ye
- never hear that?"
-
- "And what would he kill him for?" said I.
-
- "And what for, but just to get the place," said he.
-
- "The place?" said I. "The Shaws?"
-
- "Nae other place that I ken," said he.
-
- "Ay, man?" said I. "Is that so? Was my -- was Alexander the
- eldest son?"
-
- "'Deed was he," said the landlord. "What else would he have
- killed him for?"
-
- And with that he went away, as he had been impatient to do from
- the beginning.
-
- Of course, I had guessed it a long while ago; but it is one thing
- to guess, another to know; and I sat stunned with my good
- fortune, and could scarce grow to believe that the same poor lad
- who had trudged in the dust from Ettrick Forest not two days ago,
- was now one of the rich of the earth, and had a house and broad
- lands, and might mount his horse tomorrow. All these pleasant
- things, and a thousand others, crowded into my mind, as I sat
- staring before me out of the inn window, and paying no heed to
- what I saw; only I remember that my eye lighted on Captain
- Hoseason down on the pier among his seamen, and speaking with
- some authority. And presently he came marching back towards the
- house, with no mark of a sailor's clumsiness, but carrying his
- fine, tall figure with a manly bearing, and still with the same
- sober, grave expression on his face. I wondered if it was
- possible that Ransome's stories could be true, and half
- disbelieved them; they fitted so ill with the man's looks. But
- indeed, he was neither so good as I supposed him, nor quite so
- bad as Ransome did; for, in fact, he was two men, and left the
- better one behind as soon as he set foot on board his vessel.
-
- The next thing, I heard my uncle calling me, and found the pair
- in the road together. It was the captain who addressed me, and
- that with an air (very flattering to a young lad) of grave
- equality.
-
- "Sir," said he, "Mr. Balfour tells me great things of you; and
- for my own part, I like your looks. I wish I was for longer
- here, that we might make the better friends; but we'll make the
- most of what we have. Ye shall come on board my brig for half an
- hour, till the ebb sets, and drink a bowl with me."
-
- Now, I longed to see the inside of a ship more than words can
- tell; but I was not going to put myself in jeopardy, and I told
- him my uncle and I had an appointment with a lawyer.
-
- "Ay, ay," said he, "he passed me word of that. But, ye see, the
- boat'll set ye ashore at the town pier, and that's but a penny
- stonecast from Rankeillor's house." And here he suddenly leaned
- down and whispered in my ear: "Take care of the old tod;[9] he
- means mischief. Come aboard till I can get a word with ye." And
- then, passing his arm through mine, he continued aloud, as he set
- off towards his boat: "But, come, what can I bring ye from the
- Carolinas? Any friend of Mr. Balfour's can command. A roll of
- tobacco? Indian feather-work? a skin of a wild beast? a stone
- pipe? the mocking-bird that mews for all the world like a cat?
- the cardinal bird that is as red as blood? -- take your pick and
- say your pleasure."
-
- [9] Fox.
-
-
- By this time we were at the boat-side, and he was handing me in.
- I did not dream of hanging back; I thought (the poor fool!) that
- I had found a good friend and helper, and I was rejoiced to see
- the ship. As soon as we were all set in our places, the boat was
- thrust off from the pier and began to move over the waters: and
- what with my pleasure in this new movement and my surprise at our
- low position, and the appearance of the shores, and the growing
- bigness of the brig as we drew near to it, I could hardly
- understand what the captain said, and must have answered him at
- random.
-
- As soon as we were alongside (where I sat fairly gaping at the
- ship's height, the strong humming of the tide against its sides,
- and the pleasant cries of the seamen at their work) Hoseason,
- declaring that he and I must be the first aboard, ordered a
- tackle to be sent down from the main-yard. In this I was whipped
- into the air and set down again on the deck, where the captain
- stood ready waiting for me, and instantly slipped back his arm
- under mine. There I stood some while, a little dizzy with the
- unsteadiness of all around me, perhaps a little afraid, and yet
- vastly pleased with these strange sights; the captain meanwhile
- pointing out the strangest, and telling me their names and uses.
-
- "But where is my uncle?" said I suddenly.
-
- "Ay," said Hoseason, with a sudden grimness, "that's the point."
-
- I felt I was lost. With all my strength, I plucked myself clear
- of him and ran to the bulwarks. Sure enough, there was the boat
- pulling for the town, with my uncle sitting in the stern. I gave
- a piercing cry -- "Help, help! Murder!" -- so that both sides of
- the anchorage rang with it, and my uncle turned round where he
- was sitting, and showed me a face full of cruelty and terror.
-
- It was the last I saw. Already strong hands had been plucking me
- back from the ship's side; and now a thunderbolt seemed to strike
- me; I saw a great flash of fire, and fell senseless.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- I GO TO SEA IN THE BRIG "COVENANT" OF DYSART
-
- I came to myself in darkness, in great pain, bound hand and foot,
- and deafened by many unfamiliar noises. There sounded in my ears
- a roaring of water as of a huge mill-dam, the thrashing of heavy
- sprays, the thundering of the sails, and the shrill cries of
- seamen. The whole world now heaved giddily up, and now rushed
- giddily downward; and so sick and hurt was I in body, and my mind
- so much confounded, that it took me a long while, chasing my
- thoughts up and down, and ever stunned again by a fresh stab of
- pain, to realise that I must be lying somewhere bound in the
- belly of that unlucky ship, and that the wind must have
- strengthened to a gale. With the clear perception of my plight,
- there fell upon me a blackness of despair, a horror of remorse at
- my own folly, and a passion of anger at my uncle, that once more
- bereft me of my senses.
-
- When I returned again to life, the same uproar, the same confused
- and violent movements, shook and deafened me; and presently, to
- my other pains and distresses, there was added the sickness of an
- unused landsman on the sea. In that time of my adventurous
- youth, I suffered many hardships; but none that was so crushing
- to my mind and body, or lit by so few hopes, as these first hours
- aboard the brig.
-
- I heard a gun fire, and supposed the storm had proved too strong
- for us, and we were firing signals of distress. The thought of
- deliverance, even by death in the deep sea, was welcome to me.
- Yet it was no such matter; but (as I was afterwards told) a
- common habit of the captain's, which I here set down to show that
- even the worst man may have his kindlier side. We were then
- passing, it appeared, within some miles of Dysart, where the brig
- was built, and where old Mrs. Hoseason, the captain's mother, had
- come some years before to live; and whether outward or inward
- bound, the Covenant was never suffered to go by that place by
- day, without a gun fired and colours shown.
-
- I had no measure of time; day and night were alike in that
- ill-smelling cavern of the ship's bowels where, I lay; and the
- misery of my situation drew out the hours to double. How long,
- therefore, I lay waiting to hear the ship split upon some rock,
- or to feel her reel head foremost into the depths of the sea, I
- have not the means of computation. But sleep at length stole
- from me the consciousness of sorrow.
-
- I was awakened by the light of a hand-lantern shining in my face.
- A small man of about thirty, with green eyes and a tangle of fair
- hair, stood looking down at me.
-
- "Well," said he, "how goes it?"
-
- I answered by a sob; and my visitor then felt my pulse and
- temples, and set himself to wash and dress the wound upon my
- scalp.
-
- "Ay," said he, "a sore dunt[10]. What, man? Cheer up! The
- world's no done; you've made a bad start of it but you'll make a
- better. Have you had any meat?"
-
- [10] Stroke.
-
-
- I said I could not look at it: and thereupon he gave me some
- brandy and water in a tin pannikin, and left me once more to
- myself.
-
- The next time he came to see me, I was lying betwixt sleep and
- waking, my eyes wide open in the darkness, the sickness quite
- departed, but succeeded by a horrid giddiness and swimming that
- was almost worse to bear. I ached, besides, in every limb, and
- the cords that bound me seemed to be of fire. The smell of the
- hole in which I lay seemed to have become a part of me; and
- during the long interval since his last visit I had suffered
- tortures of fear, now from the scurrying of the ship's rats, that
- sometimes pattered on my very face, and now from the dismal
- imaginings that haunt the bed of fever.
-
- The glimmer of the lantern, as a trap opened, shone in like the
- heaven's sunlight; and though it only showed me the strong, dark
- beams of the ship that was my prison, I could have cried aloud
- for gladness. The man with the green eyes was the first to
- descend the ladder, and I noticed that he came somewhat
- unsteadily. He was followed by the captain. Neither said a
- word; but the first set to and examined me, and dressed my wound
- as before, while Hoseason looked me in my face with an odd, black
- look.
-
- "Now, sir, you see for yourself," said the first: "a high fever,
- no appetite, no light, no meat: you see for yourself what that
- means."
-
- "I am no conjurer, Mr. Riach," said the captain.
-
- "Give me leave, sir" said Riach; "you've a good head upon your
- shoulders, and a good Scotch tongue to ask with; but I will leave
- you no manner of excuse; I want that boy taken out of this hole
- and put in the forecastle."
-
- "What ye may want, sir, is a matter of concern to nobody but
- yoursel'," returned the captain; "but I can tell ye that which is
- to be. Here he is; here he shall bide."
-
- "Admitting that you have been paid in a proportion," said the
- other, "I will crave leave humbly to say that I have not. Paid I
- am, and none too much, to be the second officer of this old tub,
- and you ken very well if I do my best to earn it. But I was paid
- for nothing more."
-
- "If ye could hold back your hand from the tin-pan, Mr. Riach, I
- would have no complaint to make of ye," returned the skipper;
- "and instead of asking riddles, I make bold to say that ye would
- keep your breath to cool your porridge. We'll be required on
- deck," he added, in a sharper note, and set one foot upon the
- ladder.
-
- But Mr. Riach caught him by the sleeve.
-
- "Admitting that you have been paid to do a murder ----" he began.
-
- Hoseason turned upon him with a flash.
-
- "What's that?" he cried. "What kind of talk is that?"
-
- "It seems it is the talk that you can understand," said Mr.
- Riach, looking him steadily in the face.
-
- "Mr. Riach, I have sailed with ye three cruises," replied the
- captain. "In all that time, sir, ye should have learned to know
- me: I'm a stiff man, and a dour man; but for what ye say the now
- -- fie, fie! -- it comes from a bad heart and a black conscience.
- If ye say the lad will die----"
-
- "Ay, will he!" said Mr. Riach.
-
- "Well, sir, is not that enough?" said Hoseason. "Flit him where
- ye please!"
-
- Thereupon the captain ascended the ladder; and I, who had lain
- silent throughout this strange conversation, beheld Mr. Riach
- turn after him and bow as low as to his knees in what was plainly
- a spirit of derision. Even in my then state of sickness, I
- perceived two things: that the mate was touched with liquor, as
- the captain hinted, and that (drunk or sober) he was like to
- prove a valuable friend.
-
- Five minutes afterwards my bonds were cut, I was hoisted on a
- man's back, carried up to the forecastle, and laid in a bunk on
- some sea-blankets; where the first thing that I did was to lose
- my senses.
-
- It was a blessed thing indeed to open my eyes again upon the
- daylight, and to find myself in the society of men. The
- forecastle was a roomy place enough, set all about with berths,
- in which the men of the watch below were seated smoking, or lying
- down asleep. The day being calm and the wind fair, the scuttle
- was open, and not only the good daylight, but from time to time
- (as the ship rolled) a dusty beam of sunlight shone in, and
- dazzled and delighted me. I had no sooner moved, moreover, than
- one of the men brought me a drink of something healing which Mr.
- Riach had prepared, and bade me lie still and I should soon be
- well again. There were no bones broken, he explained: "A
- clour[11] on the head was naething. Man," said he, "it was me
- that gave it ye!"
-
- [11] Blow.
-
-
- Here I lay for the space of many days a close prisoner, and not
- only got my health again, but came to know my companions. They
- were a rough lot indeed, as sailors mostly are: being men rooted
- out of all the kindly parts of life, and condemned to toss
- together on the rough seas, with masters no less cruel. There
- were some among them that had sailed with the pirates and seen
- things it would be a shame even to speak of; some were men that
- had run from the king's ships, and went with a halter round their
- necks, of which they made no secret; and all, as the saying goes,
- were "at a word and a blow" with their best friends. Yet I had
- not been many days shut up with them before I began to be ashamed
- of my first judgment, when I had drawn away from them at the
- Ferry pier, as though they had been unclean beasts. No class of
- man is altogether bad, but each has its own faults and virtues;
- and these shipmates of mine were no exception to the rule. Rough
- they were, sure enough; and bad, I suppose; but they had many
- virtues. They were kind when it occurred to them, simple even
- beyond the simplicity of a country lad like me, and had some
- glimmerings of honesty.
-
- There was one man, of maybe forty, that would sit on my berthside
- for hours and tell me of his wife and child. He was a fisher
- that had lost his boat, and thus been driven to the deep-sea
- voyaging. Well, it is years ago now: but I have never forgotten
- him. His wife (who was "young by him," as he often told me)
- waited in vain to see her man return; he would never again make
- the fire for her in the morning, nor yet keep the bairn when she
- was sick. Indeed, many of these poor fellows (as the event
- proved) were upon their last cruise; the deep seas and cannibal
- fish received them; and it is a thankless business to speak ill
- of the dead.
-
- Among other good deeds that they did, they returned my money,
- which had been shared among them; and though it was about a third
- short, I was very glad to get it, and hoped great good from it in
- the land I was going to. The ship was bound for the Carolinas;
- and you must not suppose that I was going to that place merely as
- an exile. The trade was even then much depressed; since that,
- and with the rebellion of the colonies and the formation of the
- United States, it has, of course, come to an end; but in those
- days of my youth, white men were still sold into slavery on the
- plantations, and that was the destiny to which my wicked uncle
- had condemned me.
-
- The cabin-boy Ransome (from whom I had first heard of these
- atrocities) came in at times from the round-house, where he
- berthed and served, now nursing a bruised limb in silent agony,
- now raving against the cruelty of Mr. Shuan. It made my heart
- bleed; but the men had a great respect for the chief mate, who
- was, as they said, "the only seaman of the whole jing-bang, and
- none such a bad man when he was sober." Indeed, I found there
- was a strange peculiarity about our two mates: that Mr. Riach was
- sullen, unkind, and harsh when he was sober, and Mr. Shuan would
- not hurt a fly except when he was drinking. I asked about the
- captain; but I was told drink made no difference upon that man of
- iron.
-
- I did my best in the small time allowed me to make some thing
- like a man, or rather I should say something like a boy, of the
- poor creature, Ransome. But his mind was scarce truly human. He
- could remember nothing of the time before he came to sea; only
- that his father had made clocks, and had a starling in the
- parlour, which could whistle "The North Countrie;" all else had
- been blotted out in these years of hardship and cruelties. He
- had a strange notion of the dry land, picked up from sailor's
- stories: that it was a place where lads were put to some kind of
- slavery called a trade, and where apprentices were continually
- lashed and clapped into foul prisons. In a town, he thought
- every second person a decoy, and every third house a place in
- which seamen would be drugged and murdered. To be sure, I would
- tell him how kindly I had myself been used upon that dry land he
- was so much afraid of, and how well fed and carefully taught both
- by my friends and my parents: and if he had been recently hurt,
- he would weep bitterly and swear to run away; but if he was in
- his usual crackbrain humour, or (still more) if he had had a
- glass of spirits in the roundhouse, he would deride the notion.
-
- It was Mr. Riach (Heaven forgive him!) who gave the boy drink;
- and it was, doubtless, kindly meant; but besides that it was ruin
- to his health, it was the pitifullest thing in life to see this
- unhappy, unfriended creature staggering, and dancing, and talking
- he knew not what. Some of the men laughed, but not all; others
- would grow as black as thunder (thinking, perhaps, of their own
- childhood or their own children) and bid him stop that nonsense,
- and think what he was doing. As for me, I felt ashamed to look
- at him, and the poor child still comes about me in my dreams.
-
- All this time, you should know, the Covenant was meeting
- continual head-winds and tumbling up and down against head-seas,
- so that the scuttle was almost constantly shut, and the
- forecastle lighted only by a swinging lantern on a beam. There
- was constant labour for all hands; the sails had to be made and
- shortened every hour; the strain told on the men's temper; there
- was a growl of quarrelling all day, long from berth to berth; and
- as I was never allowed to set my foot on deck, you can picture to
- yourselves how weary of my life I grew to be, and how impatient
- for a change.
-
- And a change I was to get, as you shall hear; but I must first
- tell of a conversation I had with Mr. Riach, which put a little
- heart in me to bear my troubles. Getting him in a favourable
- stage of drink (for indeed he never looked near me when he was
- sober), I pledged him to secrecy, and told him my whole story.
-
- He declared it was like a ballad; that he would do his best to
- help me; that I should have paper, pen, and ink, and write one
- line to Mr. Campbell and another to Mr. Rankeillor; and that if I
- had told the truth, ten to one he would be able (with their help)
- to pull me through and set me in my rights.
-
- "And in the meantime," says he, "keep your heart up. You're not
- the only one, I'll tell you that. There's many a man hoeing
- tobacco over-seas that should be mounting his horse at his own
- door at home; many and many! And life is all a variorum, at the
- best. Look at me: I'm a laird's son and more than half a doctor,
- and here I am, man-Jack to Hoseason!"
-
- I thought it would be civil to ask him for his story.
-
- He whistled loud.
-
- "Never had one," said he. "I like fun, that's all." And he
- skipped out of the forecastle.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- THE ROUND-HOUSE
-
- One night, about eleven o'clock, a man of Mr. Riach's watch
- (which was on deck) came below for his jacket; and instantly
- there began to go a whisper about the forecastle that "Shuan had
- done for him at last." There was no need of a name; we all knew
- who was meant; but we had scarce time to get the idea rightly in
- our heads, far less to speak of it, when the scuttle was again
- flung open, and Captain Hoseason came down the ladder. He looked
- sharply round the bunks in the tossing light of the lantern; and
- then, walking straight up to me, he addressed me, to my surprise,
- in tones of kindness.
-
- "My man," said he, "we want ye to serve in the round-house. You
- and Ransome are to change berths. Run away aft with ye."
-
- Even as he spoke, two seamen appeared in the scuttle, carrying
- Ransome in their arms; and the ship at that moment giving a great
- sheer into the sea, and the lantern swinging, the light fell
- direct on the boy's face. It was as white as wax, and had a look
- upon it like a dreadful smile. The blood in me ran cold, and I
- drew in my breath as if I had been struck.
-
- "Run away aft; run away aft with ye!" cried Hoseason.
-
- And at that I brushed by the sailors and the boy (who neither
- spoke nor moved), and ran up the ladder on deck.
-
- The brig was sheering swiftly and giddily through a long,
- cresting swell. She was on the starboard tack, and on the left
- hand, under the arched foot of the foresail, I could see the
- sunset still quite bright. This, at such an hour of the night,
- surprised me greatly; but I was too ignorant to draw the true
- conclusion -- that we were going north-about round Scotland, and
- were now on the high sea between the Orkney and Shetland Islands,
- having avoided the dangerous currents of the Pentland Firth. For
- my part, who had been so long shut in the dark and knew nothing
- of head-winds, I thought we might be half-way or more across the
- Atlantic. And indeed (beyond that I wondered a little at the
- lateness of the sunset light) I gave no heed to it, and pushed on
- across the decks, running between the seas, catching at ropes,
- and only saved from going overboard by one of the hands on deck,
- who had been always kind to me.
-
- The round-house, for which I was bound, and where I was now to
- sleep and serve, stood some six feet above the decks, and
- considering the size of the brig, was of good dimensions. Inside
- were a fixed table and bench, and two berths, one for the captain
- and the other for the two mates, turn and turn about. It was all
- fitted with lockers from top to bottom, so as to stow away the
- officers' belongings and a part of the ship's stores; there was a
- second store-room underneath, which you entered by a hatchway in
- the middle of the deck; indeed, all the best of the meat and
- drink and the whole of the powder were collected in this place;
- and all the firearms, except the two pieces of brass ordnance,
- were set in a rack in the aftermost wall of the round-house. The
- most of the cutlasses were in another place.
-
- A small window with a shutter on each side, and a skylight in the
- roof, gave it light by, day; and after dark there was a lamp
- always burning. It was burning when I entered, not brightly, but
- enough to show Mr. Shuan sitting at the table, with the brandy
- bottle and a tin pannikin in front of him. He was a tall man,
- strongly made and very black; and he stared before him on the
- table like one stupid.
-
- He took no notice of my coming in; nor did he move when the
- captain followed and leant on the berth beside me, looking darkly
- at the mate. I stood in great fear of Hoseason, and had my
- reasons for it; but something told me I need not be afraid of him
- just then; and I whispered in his ear: "How is he?" He shook his
- head like one that does not know and does not wish to think, and
- his face was very stern.
-
- Presently Mr. Riach came in. He gave the captain a glance that
- meant the boy was dead as plain as speaking, and took his place
- like the rest of us; so that we all three stood without a word,
- staring down at Mr. Shuan, and Mr. Shuan (on his side) sat
- without a word, looking hard upon the table.
-
- All of a sudden he put out his hand to take the bottle; and at
- that Mr. Riach started forward and caught it away from him,
- rather by surprise than violence, crying out, with an oath, that
- there had been too much of this work altogether, and that a
- judgment would fall upon the ship. And as he spoke (the weather
- sliding-doors standing open) he tossed the bottle into the sea.
-
- Mr. Shuan was on his feet in a trice; he still looked dazed, but
- he meant murder, ay, and would have done it, for the second time
- that night, had not the captain stepped in between him and his
- victim.
-
- "Sit down!" roars the captain. "Ye sot and swine, do ye know
- what ye've done? Ye've murdered the boy!"
-
- Mr. Shuan seemed to understand; for he sat down again, and put up
- his hand to his brow.
-
- "Well," he said, "he brought me a dirty pannikin!"
-
- At that word, the captain and I and Mr. Riach all looked at each
- other for a second with a kind of frightened look; and then
- Hoseason walked up to his chief officer, took him by the
- shoulder, led him across to his bunk, and bade him lie down and
- go to sleep, as you might speak to a bad child. The murderer
- cried a little, but he took off his sea-boots and obeyed.
-
- "Ah!" cried Mr. Riach, with a dreadful voice, "ye should have
- interfered long syne. It's too late now."
-
- "Mr. Riach," said the captain, "this night's work must never be
- kennt in Dysart. The boy went overboard, sir; that's what the
- story is; and I would give five pounds out of my pocket it was
- true!" He turned to the table. "What made ye throw the good
- bottle away?" he added. "There was nae sense in that, sir.
- Here, David, draw me another. They're in the bottom locker;" and
- he tossed me a key. "Ye'll need a glass yourself, sir," he added
- to Riach. "Yon was an ugly thing to see."
-
- So the pair sat down and hob-a-nobbed; and while they did so, the
- murderer, who had been lying and whimpering in his berth, raised
- himself upon his elbow and looked at them and at me.
-
- That was the first night of my new duties; and in the course of
- the next day I had got well into the run of them. I had to serve
- at the meals, which the captain took at regular hours, sitting
- down with the officer who was off duty; all the day through I
- would be running with a dram to one or other of my three masters;
- and at night I slept on a blanket thrown on the deck boards at
- the aftermost end of the round-house, and right in the draught of
- the two doors. It was a hard and a cold bed; nor was I suffered
- to sleep without interruption; for some one would be always
- coming in from deck to get a dram, and when a fresh watch was to
- be set, two and sometimes all three would sit down and brew a
- bowl together. How they kept their health, I know not, any more
- than how I kept my own.
-
- And yet in other ways it was an easy service. There was no cloth
- to lay; the meals were either of oatmeal porridge or salt junk,
- except twice a week, when there was duff: and though I was clumsy
- enough and (not being firm on my sealegs) sometimes fell with
- what I was bringing them, both Mr. Riach and the captain were
- singularly patient. I could not but fancy they were making up
- lee-way with their consciences, and that they would scarce have
- been so good with me if they had not been worse with Ransome.
-
- As for Mr. Shuan, the drink or his crime, or the two together,
- had certainly troubled his mind. I cannot say I ever saw him in
- his proper wits. He never grew used to my being there, stared at
- me continually (sometimes, I could have thought, with terror),
- and more than once drew back from my hand when I was serving him.
- I was pretty sure from the first that he had no clear mind of
- what he had done, and on my second day in the round-house I had
- the proof of it. We were alone, and he had been staring at me a
- long time, when all at once, up he got, as pale as death, and
- came close up to me, to my great terror. But I had no cause to
- be afraid of him.
-
- "You were not here before?" he asked.
-
- "No, sir," said I."
-
- "There was another boy?" he asked again; and when I had answered
- him, "Ah!" says he, "I thought that," and went and sat down,
- without another word, except to call for brandy.
-
- You may think it strange, but for all the horror I had, I was
- still sorry for him. He was a married man, with a wife in Leith;
- but whether or no he had a family, I have now forgotten; I hope
- not.
-
- Altogether it was no very hard life for the time it lasted, which
- (as you are to hear) was not long. I was as well fed as the best
- of them; even their pickles, which were the great dainty, I was
- allowed my share of; and had I liked I might have been drunk from
- morning to night, like Mr. Shuan. I had company, too, and good
- company of its sort. Mr. Riach, who had been to the college,
- spoke to me like a friend when he was not sulking, and told me
- many curious things, and some that were informing; and even the
- captain, though he kept me at the stick's end the most part of
- the time, would sometimes unbuckle a bit, and tell me of the fine
- countries he had visited.
-
- The shadow of poor Ransome, to be sure, lay on all four of us,
- and on me and Mr. Shuan in particular, most heavily. And then I
- had another trouble of my own. Here I was, doing dirty work for
- three men that I looked down upon, and one of whom, at least,
- should have hung upon a gallows; that was for the present; and as
- for the future, I could only see myself slaving alongside of
- negroes in the tobacco fields. Mr. Riach, perhaps from caution,
- would never suffer me to say another word about my story; the
- captain, whom I tried to approach, rebuffed me like a dog and
- would not hear a word; and as the days came and went, my heart
- sank lower and lower, till I was even glad of the work which kept
- me from thinking.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
-
- THE MAN WITH THE BELT OF GOLD
-
- More than a week went by, in which the ill-luck that had hitherto
- pursued the Covenant upon this voyage grew yet more strongly
- marked. Some days she made a little way; others, she was driven
- actually back. At last we were beaten so far to the south that
- we tossed and tacked to and fro the whole of the ninth day,
- within sight of Cape Wrath and the wild, rocky coast on either
- hand of it. There followed on that a council of the officers,
- and some decision which I did not rightly understand, seeing only
- the result: that we had made a fair wind of a foul one and were
- running south.
-
- The tenth afternoon there was a falling swell and a thick, wet,
- white fog that hid one end of the brig from the other. All
- afternoon, when I went on deck, I saw men and officers listening
- hard over the bulwarks -- "for breakers," they said; and though I
- did not so much as understand the word, I felt danger in the air,
- and was excited.
-
- Maybe about ten at night, I was serving Mr. Riach and the captain
- at their supper, when the ship struck something with a great
- sound, and we heard voices singing out. My two masters leaped to
- their feet.
-
- "She's struck!" said Mr. Riach.
-
- "No, sir," said the captain. "We've only run a boat down."
-
- And they hurried out.
-
- The captain was in the right of it. We had run down a boat in
- the fog, and she had parted in the midst and gone to the bottom
- with all her crew but one. This man (as I heard afterwards) had
- been sitting in the stern as a passenger, while the rest were on
- the benches rowing. At the moment of the blow, the stern had
- been thrown into the air, and the man (having his hands free, and
- for all he was encumbered with a frieze overcoat that came below
- his knees) had leaped up and caught hold of the brig's bowsprit.
- It showed he had luck and much agility and unusual strength, that
- he should have thus saved himself from such a pass. And yet,
- when the captain brought him into the round-house, and I set eyes
- on him for the first time, he looked as cool as I did.
-
- He was smallish in stature, but well set and as nimble as a goat;
- his face was of a good open expression, but sunburnt very dark,
- and heavily freckled and pitted with the small-pox; his eyes were
- unusually light and had a kind of dancing madness in them, that
- was both engaging and alarming; and when he took off his
- great-coat, he laid a pair of fine silver-mounted pistols on the
- table, and I saw that he was belted with a great sword. His
- manners, besides, were elegant, and he pledged the captain
- handsomely. Altogether I thought of him, at the first sight,
- that here was a man I would rather call my friend than my enemy.
-
- The captain, too, was taking his observations, but rather of the
- man's clothes than his person. And to be sure, as soon as he had
- taken off the great-coat, he showed forth mighty fine for the
- round-house of a merchant brig: having a hat with feathers, a red
- waistcoat, breeches of black plush, and a blue coat with silver
- buttons and handsome silver lace; costly clothes, though somewhat
- spoiled with the fog and being slept in.
-
- "I'm vexed, sir, about the boat," says the captain.
-
- "There are some pretty men gone to the bottom," said the
- stranger, "that I would rather see on the dry land again than
- half a score of boats."
-
- "Friends of yours?" said Hoseason.
-
- "You have none such friends in your country," was the reply.
- "They would have died for me like dogs."
-
- "Well, sir," said the captain, still watching him, "there are
- more men in the world than boats to put them in."
-
- "And that's true, too," cried the other, "and ye seem to be a
- gentleman of great penetration."
-
- "I have been in France, sir," says the captain, so that it was
- plain he meant more by the words than showed upon the face of
- them.
-
- "Well, sir," says the other, "and so has many a pretty man, for
- the matter of that."
-
- "No doubt, sir" says the captain, "and fine coats."
-
- "Oho!" says the stranger, "is that how the wind sets?" And he
- laid his hand quickly on his pistols.
-
- "Don't be hasty," said the captain. "Don't do a mischief before
- ye see the need of it. Ye've a French soldier's coat upon your
- back and a Scotch tongue in your head, to be sure; but so has
- many an honest fellow in these days, and I dare say none the
- worse of it."
-
- "So?" said the gentleman in the fine coat: "are ye of the honest
- party?" (meaning, Was he a Jacobite? for each side, in these sort
- of civil broils, takes the name of honesty for its own).
-
- "Why, sir," replied the captain, "I am a true-blue Protestant,
- and I thank God for it." (It was the first word of any religion
- I had ever heard from him, but I learnt afterwards he was a great
- church-goer while on shore.) "But, for all that," says he, "I
- can be sorry to see another man with his back to the wall."
-
- "Can ye so, indeed?" asked the Jacobite. "Well, sir, to be quite
- plain with ye, I am one of those honest gentlemen that were in
- trouble about the years forty-five and six; and (to be still
- quite plain with ye) if I got into the hands of any of the
- red-coated gentry, it's like it would go hard with me. Now, sir,
- I was for France; and there was a French ship cruising here to
- pick me up; but she gave us the go-by in the fog -- as I wish
- from the heart that ye had done yoursel'! And the best that I can
- say is this: If ye can set me ashore where I was going, I have
- that upon me will reward you highly for your trouble."
-
- "In France?" says the captain. "No, sir; that I cannot do. But
- where ye come from -- we might talk of that."
-
- And then, unhappily, he observed me standing in my corner, and
- packed me off to the galley to get supper for the gentleman. I
- lost no time, I promise you; and when I came back into the
- round-house, I found the gentleman had taken a money-belt from
- about his waist, and poured out a guinea or two upon the table.
- The captain was looking at the guineas, and then at the belt, and
- then at the gentleman's face; and I thought he seemed excited.
-
- "Half of it," he cried, "and I'm your man!"
-
- The other swept back the guineas into the belt, and put it on
- again under his waistcoat. "I have told ye" sir" said he, "that
- not one doit of it belongs to me. It belongs to my chieftain,"
- and here he touched his hat, "and while I would be but a silly
- messenger to grudge some of it that the rest might come safe, I
- should show myself a hound indeed if I bought my own carcase any
- too dear. Thirty guineas on the sea-side, or sixty if ye set me
- on the Linnhe Loch. Take it, if ye will; if not, ye can do your
- worst."
-
- "Ay," said Hoseason. "And if I give ye over to the soldiers?"
-
- "Ye would make a fool's bargain," said the other. "My chief, let
- me tell you, sir, is forfeited, like every honest man in
- Scotland. His estate is in the hands of the man they call King
- George; and it is his officers that collect the rents, or try to
- collect them. But for the honour of Scotland, the poor tenant
- bodies take a thought upon their chief lying in exile; and this
- money is a part of that very rent for which King George is
- looking. Now, sir, ye seem to me to be a man that understands
- things: bring this money within the reach of Government, and how
- much of it'll come to you?"
-
- "Little enough, to be sure," said Hoseason; and then, "if they,
- knew" he added, drily. "But I think, if I was to try, that I
- could hold my tongue about it."
-
- "Ah, but I'll begowk[12] ye there!" cried the gentleman. "Play
- me false, and I'll play you cunning. If a hand is laid upon me,
- they shall ken what money it is."
-
- [12]Befool.
-
-
- "Well," returned the captain, "what must be must. Sixty guineas,
- and done. Here's my hand upon it."
-
- "And here's mine," said the other.
-
- And thereupon the captain went out (rather hurriedly, I thought),
- and left me alone in the round-house with the stranger.
-
- At that period (so soon after the forty-five) there were many
- exiled gentlemen coming back at the peril of their lives, either
- to see their friends or to collect a little money; and as for the
- Highland chiefs that had been forfeited, it was a common matter
- of talk how their tenants would stint themselves to send them
- money, and their clansmen outface the soldiery to get it in, and
- run the gauntlet of our great navy to carry it across. All this
- I had, of course, heard tell of; and now I had a man under my
- eyes whose life was forfeit on all these counts and upon one
- more, for he was not only a rebel and a smuggler of rents, but
- had taken service with King Louis of France. And as if all this
- were not enough, he had a belt full of golden guineas round his
- loins. Whatever my opinions, I could not look on such a man
- without a lively interest.
-
- "And so you're a Jacobite?" said I, as I set meat before him.
-
- "Ay," said he, beginning to eat. "And you, by your long face,
- should be a Whig?"[13]
-
- [13] Whig or Whigamore was the cant name for those who were loyal
- to King George.
-
-
- "Betwixt and between," said I, not to annoy him; for indeed I was
- as good a Whig as Mr. Campbell could make me.
-
- "And that's naething," said he. "But I'm saying, Mr.
- Betwixt-and-Between," he added, "this bottle of yours is dry; and
- it's hard if I'm to pay sixty guineas and be grudged a dram upon
- the back of it."
-
- "I'll go and ask for the key," said I, and stepped on deck.
-
- The fog was as close as ever, but the swell almost down. They
- had laid the brig to, not knowing precisely where they were, and
- the wind (what little there was of it) not serving well for their
- true course. Some of the hands were still hearkening for
- breakers; but the captain and the two officers were in the waist
- with their heads together. It struck me (I don't know why) that
- they were after no good; and the first word I heard, as I drew
- softly near, more than confirmed me.
-
- It was Mr. Riach, crying out as if upon a sudden thought:
- "Couldn't we wile him out of the round-house?"
-
- "He's better where he is," returned Hoseason; "he hasn't room to
- use his sword."
-
- "Well, that's true," said Riach; "but he's hard to come at."
-
- "Hut!" said Hoseason. "We can get the man in talk, one upon each
- side, and pin him by the two arms; or if that'll not hold, sir,
- we can make a run by both the doors and get him under hand before
- he has the time to draw"
-
- At this hearing, I was seized with both fear and anger at these
- treacherous, greedy, bloody men that I sailed with. My first
- mind was to run away; my second was bolder.
-
- "Captain," said I, "the gentleman is seeking a dram, and the
- bottle's out. Will you give me the key?"
-
- They all started and turned about.
-
- "Why, here's our chance to get the firearms!"
-
- Riach cried; and then to me: "Hark ye, David," he said, "do ye
- ken where the pistols are?"
-
- "Ay, ay," put in Hoseason. "David kens; David's a good lad. Ye
- see, David my man, yon wild Hielandman is a danger to the ship,
- besides being a rank foe to King George, God bless him!"
-
- I had never been so be-Davided since I came on board: but I said
- Yes, as if all I heard were quite natural.
-
- "The trouble is," resumed the captain, "that all our firelocks,
- great and little, are in the round-house under this man's nose;
- likewise the powder. Now, if I, or one of the officers, was to
- go in and take them, he would fall to thinking. But a lad like
- you, David, might snap up a horn and a pistol or two without
- remark. And if ye can do it cleverly, I'll bear it in mind when
- it'll be good for you to have friends; and that's when we come to
- Carolina."
-
- Here Mr. Riach whispered him a little.
-
- "Very right, sir," said the captain; and then to myself: "And see
- here, David, yon man has a beltful of gold, and I give you my
- word that you shall have your fingers in it."
-
- I told him I would do as he wished, though indeed I had scarce
- breath to speak with; and upon that he gave me the key of the
- spirit locker, and I began to go slowly back to the round-house.
- What was I to do? They were dogs and thieves; they had stolen me
- from my own country; they had killed poor Ransome; and was I to
- hold the candle to another murder? But then, upon the other hand,
- there was the fear of death very plain before me; for what could
- a boy and a man, if they were as brave as lions, against a whole
- ship's company?
-
- I was still arguing it back and forth, and getting no great
- clearness, when I came into the round-house and saw the Jacobite
- eating his supper under the lamp; and at that my mind was made up
- all in a moment. I have no credit by it; it was by no choice of
- mine, but as if by compulsion, that I walked right up to the
- table and put my hand on his shoulder.
-
- "Do ye want to be killed?" said I. He sprang to his feet, and
- looked a question at me as clear as if he had spoken.
-
- "O!" cried I, "they're all murderers here; it's a ship full of
- them! They've murdered a boy already. Now it's you."
-
- "Ay, ay" said he; "but they have n't got me yet." And then
- looking at me curiously, "Will ye stand with me?"
-
- "That will I!" said I. "I am no thief, nor yet murderer. I'll
- stand by you."
-
- "Why, then," said he, "what's your name?"
-
- "David Balfour," said I; and then, thinking that a man with so
- fine a coat must like fine people, I added for the first time,
- "of Shaws."
-
- It never occurred to him to doubt me, for a Highlander is used to
- see great gentlefolk in great poverty; but as he had no estate of
- his own, my words nettled a very childish vanity he had.
-
- "My name is Stewart," he said, drawing himself up. "Alan Breck,
- they call me. A king's name is good enough for me, though I bear
- it plain and have the name of no farm-midden to clap to the
- hind-end of it."
-
- And having administered this rebuke, as though it were something
- of a chief importance, he turned to examine our defences.
-
- The round-house was built very strong, to support the breaching
- of the seas. Of its five apertures, only the skylight and the
- two doors were large enough for the passage of a man. The doors,
- besides, could be drawn close: they were of stout oak, and ran in
- grooves, and were fitted with hooks to keep them either shut or
- open, as the need arose. The one that was already shut I secured
- in this fashion; but when I was proceeding to slide to the other,
- Alan stopped me.
-
- "David," said he -- "for I cannae bring to mind the name of your
- landed estate, and so will make so bold as to call you David --
- that door, being open, is the best part of my defences."
-
- "It would be yet better shut," says I.
-
- "Not so, David," says he. "Ye see, I have but one face; but so
- long as that door is open and my face to it, the best part of my
- enemies will be in front of me, where I would aye wish to find
- them."
-
- Then he gave me from the rack a cutlass (of which there were a
- few besides the firearms), choosing it with great care, shaking
- his head and saying he had never in all his life seen poorer
- weapons; and next he set me down to the table with a powder-horn,
- a bag of bullets and all the pistols, which he bade me charge.
-
- "And that will be better work, let me tell you," said he, "for a
- gentleman of decent birth, than scraping plates and raxing[14]
- drams to a wheen tarry sailors."
-
- [14]Reaching.
-
-
- Thereupon he stood up in the midst with his face to the door, and
- drawing his great sword, made trial of the room he had to wield
- it in.
-
- "I must stick to the point," he said, shaking his head; "and
- that's a pity, too. It doesn't set my genius, which is all for
- the upper guard. And, now" said he, "do you keep on charging the
- pistols, and give heed to me."
-
- I told him I would listen closely. My chest was tight, my mouth
- dry, the light dark to my eyes; the thought of the numbers that
- were soon to leap in upon us kept my heart in a flutter: and the
- sea, which I heard washing round the brig, and where I thought my
- dead body would be cast ere morning, ran in my mind strangely.
-
- "First of all," said he, "how many are against us?"
-
- I reckoned them up; and such was the hurry of my mind, I had to
- cast the numbers twice. "Fifteen," said I.
-
- Alan whistled. "Well," said he, "that can't be cured. And now
- follow me. It is my part to keep this door, where I look for the
- main battle. In that, ye have no hand. And mind and dinnae fire
- to this side unless they get me down; for I would rather have ten
- foes in front of me than one friend like you cracking pistols at
- my back."
-
- I told him, indeed I was no great shot.
-
- "And that, s very bravely said," he cried, in a great admiration
- of my candour. "There's many a pretty gentleman that wouldnae
- dare to say it."
-
- "But then, sir" said I, "there is the door behind you" which they
- may perhaps break in."
-
- "Ay," said he, "and that is a part of your work. No sooner the
- pistols charged, than ye must climb up into yon bed where ye're
- handy at the window; and if they lift hand, against the door,
- ye're to shoot. But that's not all. Let's make a bit of a
- soldier of ye, David. What else have ye to guard?"
-
- "There's the skylight," said I. "But indeed, Mr. Stewart, I
- would need to have eyes upon both sides to keep the two of them;
- for when my face is at the one, my back is to the other."
-
- "And that's very true," said Alan. "But have ye no ears to your
- head?"
-
- "To be sure!" cried I. "I must hear the bursting of the glass!"
-
- "Ye have some rudiments of sense," said Alan, grimly.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- THE SIEGE OF THE ROUND-HOUSE
-
- But now our time of truce was come to an end. Those on deck had
- waited for my coming till they grew impatient; and scarce had
- Alan spoken, when the captain showed face in the open door.
-
- "Stand!" cried Alan, and pointed his sword at him. The captain
- stood, indeed; but he neither winced nor drew back a foot.
-
- "A naked sword?" says he. "This is a strange return for
- hospitality."
-
- "Do ye see me?" said Alan. "I am come of kings; I bear a king's
- name. My badge is the oak. Do ye see my sword? It has slashed
- the heads off mair Whigamores than you have toes upon your feet.
- Call up your vermin to your back, sir, and fall on! The sooner
- the clash begins, the sooner ye'll taste this steel throughout
- your vitals."
-
- The captain said nothing to Alan, but he looked over at me with
- an ugly look. "David," said he, "I'll mind this;" and the sound
- of his voice went through me with a jar.
-
- Next moment he was gone.
-
- "And now," said Alan, "let your hand keep your head, for the grip
- is coming."
-
- Alan drew a dirk, which he held in his left hand in case they
- should run in under his sword. I, on my part, clambered up into
- the berth with an armful of pistols and something of a heavy
- heart, and set open the window where I was to watch. It was a
- small part of the deck that I could overlook, but enough for our
- purpose. The sea had gone down, and the wind was steady and kept
- the sails quiet; so that there was a great stillness in the ship,
- in which I made sure I heard the sound of muttering voices. A
- little after, and there came a clash of steel upon the deck, by
- which I knew they were dealing out the cutlasses and one had been
- let fall; and after that, silence again.
-
- I do not know if I was what you call afraid; but my heart beat
- like a bird's, both quick and little; and there was a dimness
- came before my eyes which I continually rubbed away, and which
- continually returned. As for hope, I had none; but only a
- darkness of despair and a sort of anger against all the world
- that made me long to sell my life as dear as I was able. I tried
- to pray, I remember, but that same hurry of my mind, like a man
- running, would not suffer me to think upon the words; and my
- chief wish was to have the thing begin and be done with it.
-
- It came all of a sudden when it did, with a rush of feet and a
- roar, and then a shout from Alan, and a sound of blows and some
- one crying out as if hurt. I looked back over my shoulder, and
- saw Mr. Shuan in the doorway, crossing blades with Alan.
-
- "That's him that killed the boy!" I cried.
-
- "Look to your window!" said Alan; and as I turned back to my
- place, I saw him pass his sword through the mate's body.
-
- It was none too soon for me to look to my own part; for my head
- was scarce back at the window, before five men, carrying a spare
- yard for a battering-ram, ran past me and took post to drive the
- door in. I had never fired with a pistol in my life, and not
- often with a gun; far less against a fellow-creature. But it was
- now or never; and just as they swang the yard, I cried out: "Take
- that!" and shot into their midst.
-
- I must have hit one of them, for he sang out and gave back a
- step, and the rest stopped as if a little disconcerted. Before
- they had time to recover, I sent another ball over their heads;
- and at my third shot (which went as wide as the second) the whole
- party threw down the yard and ran for it.
-
- Then I looked round again into the deck-house. The whole place
- was full of the smoke of my own firing, just as my ears seemed to
- be burst with the noise of the shots. But there was Alan,
- standing as before; only now his sword was running blood to the
- hilt, and himself so swelled with triumph and fallen into so fine
- an attitude, that he looked to be invincible. Right before him
- on the floor was Mr. Shuan, on his hands and knees; the blood was
- pouring from his mouth, and he was sinking slowly lower, with a
- terrible, white face; and just as I looked, some of those from
- behind caught hold of him by the heels and dragged him bodily out
- of the round-house. I believe he died as they were doing it.
-
- "There's one of your Whigs for ye!" cried Alan; and then turning
- to me, he asked if I had done much execution.
-
- I told him I had winged one, and thought it was the captain.
-
- "And I've settled two," says he. "No, there's not enough blood
- let; they'll be back again. To your watch, David. This was but
- a dram before meat."
-
- I settled back to my place, re-charging the three pistols I had
- fired, and keeping watch with both eye and ear.
-
- Our enemies were disputing not far off upon the deck, and that so
- loudly that I could hear a word or two above the washing of the
- seas.
-
- "It was Shuan bauchled[15] it," I heard one say.
-
- [15]Bungled.
-
-
- And another answered him with a "Wheesht, man! He's paid the
- piper."
-
- After that the voices fell again into the same muttering as
- before. Only now, one person spoke most of the time, as though
- laying down a plan, and first one and then another answered him
- briefly, like men taking orders. By this, I made sure they were
- coming on again, and told Alan.
-
- "It's what we have to pray for," said he. "Unless we can give
- them a good distaste of us, and done with it, there'll be nae
- sleep for either you or me. But this time, mind, they'll be in
- earnest."
-
- By this, my pistols were ready, and there was nothing to do but
- listen and wait. While the brush lasted, I had not the time to
- think if I was frighted; but now, when all was still again, my
- mind ran upon nothing else. The thought of the sharp swords and
- the cold steel was strong in me; and presently, when I began to
- hear stealthy steps and a brushing of men's clothes against the
- round-house wall, and knew they were taking their places in the
- dark, I could have found it in my mind to cry out aloud.
-
- All this was upon Alan's side; and I had begun to think my share
- of the fight was at an end, when I heard some one drop softly on
- the roof above me.
-
- Then there came a single call on the sea-pipe, and that was the
- signal. A knot of them made one rush of it, cutlass in hand,
- against the door; and at the same moment, the glass of the
- skylight was dashed in a thousand pieces, and a man leaped
- through and landed on the floor. Before he got his feet, I had
- clapped a pistol to his back, and might have shot him, too; only
- at the touch of him (and him alive) my whole flesh misgave me,
- and I could no more pull the trigger than I could have flown.
-
- He had dropped his cutlass as he jumped, and when he felt the
- pistol, whipped straight round and laid hold of me, roaring out
- an oath; and at that either my courage came again, or I grew so
- much afraid as came to the same thing; for I gave a shriek and
- shot him in the midst of the body. He gave the most horrible,
- ugly groan and fell to the floor. The foot of a second fellow,
- whose legs were dangling through the skylight, struck me at the
- same time upon the head; and at that I snatched another pistol
- and shot this one through the thigh, so that he slipped through
- and tumbled in a lump on his companion's body. There was no talk
- of missing, any more than there was time to aim; I clapped the
- muzzle to the very place and fired.
-
- I might have stood and stared at them for long, but I heard Alan
- shout as if for help, and that brought me to my senses.
-
- He had kept the door so long; but one of the seamen, while he was
- engaged with others, had run in under his guard and caught him
- about the body. Alan was dirking him with his left hand, but the
- fellow clung like a leech. Another had broken in and had his
- cutlass raised. The door was thronged with their faces. I
- thought we were lost, and catching up my cutlass, fell on them in
- flank.
-
- But I had not time to be of help. The wrestler dropped at last;
- and Alan, leaping back to get his distance, ran upon the others
- like a bull, roaring as he went. They broke before him like
- water, turning, and running, and falling one against another in
- their haste. The sword in his hands flashed like quicksilver
- into the huddle of our fleeing enemies; and at every flash there
- came the scream of a man hurt. I was still thinking we were
- lost, when lo! they were all gone, and Alan was driving them
- along the deck as a sheep-dog chases sheep.
-
- Yet he was no sooner out than he was back again, being as
- cautious as he was brave; and meanwhile the seamen continued
- running and crying out as if he was still behind them; and we
- heard them tumble one upon another into the forecastle, and
- clap-to the hatch upon the top.
-
- The round-house was like a shambles; three were dead inside,
- another lay in his death agony across the threshold; and there
- were Alan and I victorious and unhurt.
-
- He came up to me with open arms. "Come to my arms!" he cried,
- and embraced and kissed me hard upon both cheek. "David," said
- he, "I love you like a brother. And O, man," he cried in a kind
- of ecstasy, "am I no a bonny fighter?"
-
- Thereupon he turned to the four enemies, passed his sword clean
- through each of them, and tumbled them out of doors one after the
- other. As he did so, he kept humming and singing and whistling
- to himself, like a man trying to recall an air; only what HE was
- trying was to make one. All the while, the flush was in his
- face, and his eyes were as bright as a five-year-old child's with
- a new toy. And presently he sat down upon the table, sword in
- hand; the air that he was making all the time began to run a
- little clearer, and then clearer still; and then out he burst
- with a great voice into a Gaelic song.
-
- I have translated it here, not in verse (of which I have no
- skill) but at least in the king's English.
-
- He sang it often afterwards, and the thing became popular; so
- that I have, heard it, and had it explained to me, many's the
- time.
-
-
- "This is the song of the sword of Alan;
- The smith made it,
- The fire set it;
- Now it shines in the hand of Alan Breck.
-
- "Their eyes were many and bright,
- Swift were they to behold,
- Many the hands they guided:
- The sword was alone.
-
- "The dun deer troop over the hill,
- They are many, the hill is one;
- The dun deer vanish,
- The hill remains.
-
- "Come to me from the hills of heather,
- Come from the isles of the sea.
- O far-beholding eagles,
- Here is your meat."
-
-
- Now this song which he made (both words and music) in the hour of
- our victory, is something less than just to me, who stood beside
- him in the tussle. Mr. Shuan and five more were either killed
- outright or thoroughly disabled; but of these, two fell by my
- hand, the two that came by the skylight. Four more were hurt,
- and of that number, one (and he not the least important) got his
- hurt from me. So that, altogether, I did my fair share both of
- the killing and the wounding, and might have claimed a place in
- Alan's verses. But poets have to think upon their rhymes; and in
- good prose talk, Alan always did me more than justice.
-
- In the meanwhile, I was innocent of any wrong being done me. For
- not only I knew no word of the Gaelic; but what with the long
- suspense of the waiting, and the scurry and strain of our two
- spirts of fighting, and more than all, the horror I had of some
- of my own share in it, the thing was no sooner over than I was
- glad to stagger to a seat. There was that tightness on my chest
- that I could hardly breathe; the thought of the two men I had
- shot sat upon me like a nightmare; and all upon a sudden, and
- before I had a guess of what was coming, I began to sob and cry
- like any child.
-
- Alan clapped my shoulder, and said I was a brave lad and wanted
- nothing but a sleep.
-
- "I'll take the first watch," said he. "Ye've done well by me,
- David, first and last; and I wouldn't lose you for all Appin --
- no, nor for Breadalbane."
-
- So I made up my bed on the floor; and he took the first spell,
- pistol in hand and sword on knee, three hours by the captain's
- watch upon the wall. Then he roused me up, and I took my turn of
- three hours; before the end of which it was broad day, and a very
- quiet morning, with a smooth, rolling sea that tossed the ship
- and made the blood run to and fro on the round-house floor, and a
- heavy rain that drummed upon the roof. All my watch there was
- nothing stirring; and by the banging of the helm, I knew they had
- even no one at the tiller. Indeed (as I learned afterwards)
- there were so many of them hurt or dead, and the rest in so ill a
- temper, that Mr. Riach and the captain had to take turn and turn
- like Alan and me, or the brig might have gone ashore and nobody
- the wiser. It was a mercy the night had fallen so still, for the
- wind had gone down as soon as the rain began. Even as it was, I
- judged by the wailing of a great number of gulls that went crying
- and fishing round the ship, that she must have drifted pretty
- near the coast or one of the islands of the Hebrides; and at
- last, looking out of the door of the round-house, I saw the great
- stone hills of Skye on the right hand, and, a little more astern,
- the strange isle of Rum.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- THE CAPTAIN KNUCKLES UNDER
-
- Alan and I sat down to breakfast about six of the clock. The
- floor was covered with broken glass and in a horrid mess of
- blood, which took away my hunger. In all other ways we were in a
- situation not only agreeable but merry; having ousted the
- officers from their own cabin, and having at command all the
- drink in the ship -- both wine and spirits -- and all the dainty
- part of what was eatable, such as the pickles and the fine sort
- of bread. This, of itself, was enough to set us in good humour,
- but the richest part of it was this, that the two thirstiest men
- that ever came out of Scotland (Mr. Shuan being dead) were now
- shut in the fore-part of the ship and condemned to what they
- hated most -- cold water.
-
- "And depend upon it," Alan said, "we shall hear more of them ere
- long. Ye may keep a man from the fighting, but never from his
- bottle."
-
- We made good company for each other. Alan, indeed, expressed
- himself most lovingly; and taking a knife from the table, cut me
- off one of the silver buttons from his coat.
-
- "I had them," says he, "from my father, Duncan Stewart; and now
- give ye one of them to be a keepsake for last night's work. And
- wherever ye go and show that button, the friends of Alan Breck
- will come around you."
-
- He said this as if he had been Charlemagne, and commanded armies;
- and indeed, much as I admired his courage, I was always in danger
- of smiling at his vanity: in danger, I say, for had I not kept my
- countenance, I would be afraid to think what a quarrel might have
- followed.
-
- As soon as we were through with our meal he rummaged in the
- captain's locker till he found a clothes-brush; and then taking
- off his coat, began to visit his suit and brush away the stains,
- with such care and labour as I supposed to have been only usual
- with women. To be sure, he had no other; and, besides (as he
- said), it belonged to a king and so behoved to be royally looked
- after.
-
- For all that, when I saw what care he took to pluck out the
- threads where the button had been cut away, I put a higher value
- on his gift.
-
- He was still so engaged when we were hailed by Mr. Riach from the
- deck, asking for a parley; and I, climbing through the skylight
- and sitting on the edge of it, pistol in hand and with a bold
- front, though inwardly in fear of broken glass, hailed him back
- again and bade him speak out. He came to the edge of the
- round-house, and stood on a coil of rope, so that his chin was on
- a level with the roof; and we looked at each other awhile in
- silence. Mr. Riach, as I do not think he had been very forward
- in the battle, so he had got off with nothing worse than a blow
- upon the cheek: but he looked out of heart and very weary, having
- been all night afoot, either standing watch or doctoring the
- wounded.
-
- "This is a bad job," said he at last, shaking his head.
-
- "It was none of our choosing," said I.
-
- "The captain," says he, "would like to speak with your friend.
- They might speak at the window."
-
- "And how do we know what treachery he means?" cried I.
-
- "He means none, David," returned Mr. Riach, "and if he did, I'll
- tell ye the honest truth, we couldnae get the men to follow."
-
- "Is that so?" said I.
-
- "I'll tell ye more than that," said he. "It's not only the men;
- it's me. I'm frich'ened, Davie." And he smiled across at me.
- "No," he continued, "what we want is to be shut of him."
-
- Thereupon I consulted with Alan, and the parley was agreed to and
- parole given upon either side; but this was not the whole of Mr.
- Riach's business, and he now begged me for a dram with such
- instancy and such reminders of his former kindness, that at last
- I handed him a pannikin with about a gill of brandy. He drank a
- part, and then carried the rest down upon the deck, to share it
- (I suppose) with his superior.
-
- A little after, the captain came (as was agreed) to one of the
- windows, and stood there in the rain, with his arm in a sling,
- and looking stern and pale, and so old that my heart smote me for
- having fired upon him.
-
- Alan at once held a pistol in his face.
-
- "Put that thing up!" said the captain. "Have I not passed my
- word, sir? or do ye seek to affront me?"
-
- "Captain," says Alan, "I doubt your word is a breakable. Last
- night ye haggled and argle-bargled like an apple-wife; and then
- passed me your word, and gave me your hand to back it; and ye ken
- very well what was the upshot. Be damned to your word!" says he.
-
- "Well, well, sir," said the captain, "ye'll get little good by
- swearing." (And truly that was a fault of which the captain was
- quite free.) "But we have other things to speak," he continued,
- bitterly. "Ye've made a sore hash of my brig; I haven't hands
- enough left to work her; and my first officer (whom I could ill
- spare) has got your sword throughout his vitals, and passed
- without speech. There is nothing left me, sir, but to put back
- into the port of Glasgow after hands; and there (by your leave)
- ye will find them that are better able to talk to you."
-
- "Ay?" said Alan; "and faith, I'll have a talk with them mysel'!
- Unless there's naebody speaks English in that town, I have a
- bonny tale for them. Fifteen tarry sailors upon the one side,
- and a man and a halfling boy upon the other! O, man, it's
- peetiful!"
-
- Hoseason flushed red.
-
- "No," continued Alan, "that'll no do. Ye'll just have to set me
- ashore as we agreed."
-
- "Ay," said Hoseason, "but my first officer is dead -- ye ken best
- how. There's none of the rest of us acquaint with this coast,
- sir; and it's one very dangerous to ships."
-
- "I give ye your choice," says Alan. "Set me on dry ground in
- Appin, or Ardgour, or in Morven, or Arisaig, or Morar; or, in
- brief, where ye please, within thirty miles of my own country;
- except in a country of the Campbells. That's a broad target. If
- ye miss that, ye must be as feckless at the sailoring as I have
- found ye at the fighting. Why, my poor country people in their
- bit cobles[16] pass from island to island in all weathers, ay,
- and by night too, for the matter of that."
-
- [16]Coble: a small boat used in fishing.
-
-
- "A coble's not a ship" sir" said the captain. "It has nae
- draught of water."
-
- "Well, then, to Glasgow if ye list!" says Alan. "We'll have the
- laugh of ye at the least."
-
- "My mind runs little upon laughing," said the captain. "But all
- this will cost money, sir."
-
- "Well, sir" says Alan, "I am nae weathercock. Thirty guineas, if
- ye land me on the sea-side; and sixty, if ye put me in the Linnhe
- Loch."
-
- "But see, sir, where we lie, we are but a few hours' sail from
- Ardnamurchan," said Hoseason. "Give me sixty, and I'll set ye
- there."
-
- " And I'm to wear my brogues and run jeopardy of the red-coats to
- please you?" cries Alan. "No, sir; if ye want sixty guineas earn
- them, and set me in my own country."
-
- "It's to risk the brig, sir," said the captain, "and your own
- lives along with her."
-
- "Take it or want it," says Alan.
-
- "Could ye pilot us at all?" asked the captain, who was frowning
- to himself.
-
- "Well, it's doubtful," said Alan. "I'm more of a fighting man
- (as ye have seen for yoursel') than a sailor-man. But I have
- been often enough picked up and set down upon this coast, and
- should ken something of the lie of it."
-
- The captain shook his head, still frowning.
-
- "If I had lost less money on this unchancy cruise," says he, "I
- would see you in a rope's end before I risked my brig, sir. But
- be it as ye will. As soon as I get a slant of wind (and there's
- some coming, or I'm the more mistaken) I'll put it in hand. But
- there's one thing more. We may meet in with a king's ship and
- she may lay us aboard, sir, with no blame of mine: they keep the
- cruisers thick upon this coast, ye ken who for. Now, sir, if
- that was to befall, ye might leave the money."
-
- "Captain," says Alan, "if ye see a pennant, it shall be your part
- to run away. And now, as I hear you're a little short of brandy
- in the fore-part, I'll offer ye a change: a bottle of brandy
- against two buckets of water."
-
- That was the last clause of the treaty, and was duly executed on
- both sides; so that Alan and I could at last wash out the
- round-house and be quit of the memorials of those whom we had
- slain, and the captain and Mr. Riach could be happy again in
- their own way, the name of which was drink.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- I HEAR OF THE "RED FOX"
-
- Before we had done cleaning out the round-house, a breeze sprang
- up from a little to the east of north. This blew off the rain
- and brought out the sun.
-
- And here I must explain; and the reader would do well to look at
- a map. On the day when the fog fell and we ran down Alan's boat,
- we had been running through the Little Minch. At dawn after the
- battle, we lay becalmed to the east of the Isle of Canna or
- between that and Isle Eriska in the chain of the Long Island.
- Now to get from there to the Linnhe Loch, the straight course was
- through the narrows of the Sound of Mull. But the captain had no
- chart; he was afraid to trust his brig so deep among the islands;
- and the wind serving well, he preferred to go by west of Tiree
- and come up under the southern coast of the great Isle of Mull.
-
- All day the breeze held in the same point, and rather freshened
- than died down; and towards afternoon, a swell began to set in
- from round the outer Hebrides. Our course, to go round about the
- inner isles, was to the west of south, so that at first we had
- this swell upon our beam, and were much rolled about. But after
- nightfall, when we had turned the end of Tiree and began to head
- more to the east, the sea came right astern.
-
- Meanwhile, the early part of the day, before the swell came up,
- was very pleasant; sailing, as we were, in a bright sunshine and
- with many mountainous islands upon different sides. Alan and I
- sat in the round-house with the doors open on each side (the wind
- being straight astern), and smoked a pipe or two of the captain's
- fine tobacco. It was at this time we heard each other's stories,
- which was the more important to me, as I gained some knowledge of
- that wild Highland country on which I was so soon to land. In
- those days, so close on the back of the great rebellion, it was
- needful a man should know what he was doing when he went upon the
- heather.
-
- It was I that showed the example, telling him all my misfortune;
- which he heard with great good-nature. Only, when I came to
- mention that good friend of mine, Mr. Campbell the minister, Alan
- fired up and cried out that he hated all that were of that name.
-
- "Why," said I, "he is a man you should be proud to give your hand
- to."
-
- "I know nothing I would help a Campbell to," says he, "unless it
- was a leaden bullet. I would hunt all of that name like
- blackcocks. If I lay dying, I would crawl upon my knees to my
- chamber window for a shot at one."
-
- "Why, Alan," I cried, "what ails ye at the Campbells?"
-
- "Well," says he, "ye ken very well that I am an Appin Stewart,
- and the Campbells have long harried and wasted those of my name;
- ay, and got lands of us by treachery--but never with the sword,"
- he cried loudly, and with the word brought down his fist upon the
- table. But I paid the less attention to this, for I knew it was
- usually said by those who have the underhand. "There's more than
- that," he continued, "and all in the same story: lying words,
- lying papers, tricks fit for a peddler, and the show of what's
- legal over all, to make a man the more angry."
-
- "You that are so wasteful of your buttons," said I, "I can hardly
- think you would be a good judge of business."
-
- "Ah!" says he, falling again to smiling, "I got my wastefulness
- from the same man I got the buttons from; and that was my poor
- father, Duncan Stewart, grace be to him! He was the prettiest man
- of his kindred; and the best swordsman in the Hielands, David,
- and that is the same as to say, in all the world, I should ken,
- for it was him that taught me. He was in the Black Watch, when
- first it was mustered; and, like other gentlemen privates, had a
- gillie at his back to carry his firelock for him on the march.
- Well, the King, it appears, was wishful to see Hieland
- swordsmanship; and my father and three more were chosen out and
- sent to London town, to let him see it at the best. So they were
- had into the palace and showed the whole art of the sword for two
- hours at a stretch, before King George and Queen Carline, and the
- Butcher Cumberland, and many more of whom I havenae mind. And
- when they were through, the King (for all he was a rank usurper)
- spoke them fair and gave each man three guineas in his hand.
- Now, as they were going out of the palace, they had a porter's
- lodge to go, by; and it came in on my father, as he was perhaps
- the first private Hieland gentleman that had ever gone by that
- door, it was right he should give the poor porter a proper notion
- of their quality. So he gives the King's three guineas into the
- man's hand, as if it was his common custom; the three others that
- came behind him did the same; and there they were on the street,
- never a penny the better for their pains. Some say it was one,
- that was the first to fee the King's porter; and some say it was
- another; but the truth of it is, that it was Duncan Stewart, as I
- am willing to prove with either sword or pistol. And that was
- the father that I had, God rest him!"
-
- "I think he was not the man to leave you rich," said I.
-
- "And that's true," said Alan. "He left me my breeks to cover me,
- and little besides. And that was how I came to enlist, which was
- a black spot upon my character at the best of times, and would
- still be a sore job for me if I fell among the red-coats."
-
- "What," cried I, "were you in the English army?"
-
- "That was I," said Alan. "But I deserted to the right side at
- Preston Pans -- and that's some comfort."
-
- I could scarcely share this view: holding desertion under arms
- for an unpardonable fault in honour. But for all I was so young,
- I was wiser than say my thought. "Dear, dear," says I, "the
- punishment is death."
-
- "Ay" said he, "if they got hands on me, it would be a short
- shrift and a lang tow for Alan! But I have the King of France's
- commission in my pocket, which would aye be some protection."
-
- "I misdoubt it much," said I.
-
- "I have doubts mysel'," said Alan drily.
-
- "And, good heaven, man," cried I, "you that are a condemned
- rebel, and a deserter, and a man of the French King's -- what
- tempts ye back into this country? It's a braving of Providence."
-
- "Tut!" says Alan, "I have been back every year since forty-six!"
-
- "And what brings ye, man?" cried I.
-
- "Well, ye see, I weary for my friends and country," said he.
- "France is a braw place, nae doubt; but I weary for the heather
- and the deer. And then I have bit things that I attend to.
- Whiles I pick up a few lads to serve the King of France:
- recruits, ye see; and that's aye a little money. But the heart
- of the matter is the business of my chief, Ardshiel."
-
- "I thought they called your chief Appin," said I.
-
- "Ay, but Ardshiel is the captain of the clan," said he, which
- scarcely cleared my mind. "Ye see, David, he that was all his
- life so great a man, and come of the blood and bearing the name
- of kings, is now brought down to live in a French town like a
- poor and private person. He that had four hundred swords at his
- whistle, I have seen, with these eyes of mine, buying butter in
- the market-place, and taking it home in a kale-leaf. This is not
- only a pain but a disgrace to us of his family and clan. There
- are the bairns forby, the children and the hope of Appin, that
- must be learned their letters and how to hold a sword, in that
- far country. Now, the tenants of Appin have to pay a rent to
- King George; but their hearts are staunch, they are true to their
- chief; and what with love and a bit of pressure, and maybe a
- threat or two, the poor folk scrape up a second rent for
- Ardshiel. Well, David, I'm the hand that carries it." And he
- struck the belt about his body, so that the guineas rang.
-
- "Do they pay both?" cried I.
-
- "Ay, David, both," says he.
-
- "What! two rents?" I repeated.
-
- "Ay, David," said he. "I told a different tale to yon captain
- man; but this is the truth of it. And it's wonderful to me how
- little pressure is needed. But that's the handiwork of my good
- kinsman and my father's friend, James of the Glens: James
- Stewart, that is: Ardshiel's half-brother. He it is that gets
- the money in, and does the management."
-
- This was the first time I heard the name of that James Stewart,
- who was afterwards so famous at the time of his hanging. But I
- took little heed at the moment, for all my mind was occupied with
- the generosity of these poor Highlanders.
-
- "I call it noble," I cried. "I'm a Whig, or little better; but I
- call it noble."
-
- "Ay" said he, "ye're a Whig, but ye're a gentleman; and that's
- what does it. Now, if ye were one of the cursed race of
- Campbell, ye would gnash your teeth to hear tell of it. If ye
- were the Red Fox..." And at that name, his teeth shut together,
- and he ceased speaking. I have seen many a grim face, but never
- a grimmer than Alan's when he had named the Red Fox.
-
- "And who is the Red Fox?" I asked, daunted, but still curious.
-
- "Who is he?" cried Alan. "Well, and I'll tell you that. When
- the men of the clans were broken at Culloden, and the good cause
- went down, and the horses rode over the fetlocks in the best
- blood of the north, Ardshiel had to flee like a poor deer upon
- the mountains -- he and his lady and his bairns. A sair job we
- had of it before we got him shipped; and while he still lay in
- the heather, the English rogues, that couldnae come at his life,
- were striking at his rights. They stripped him of his powers;
- they stripped him of his lands; they plucked the weapons from the
- hands of his clansmen, that had borne arms for thirty centuries;
- ay, and the very clothes off their backs -- so that it's now a
- sin to wear a tartan plaid, and a man may be cast into a gaol if
- he has but a kilt about his legs. One thing they couldnae kill.
- That was the love the clansmen bore their chief. These guineas
- are the proof of it. And now, in there steps a man, a Campbell,
- red-headed Colin of Glenure ----"
-
- "Is that him you call the Red Fox?" said I.
-
- "Will ye bring me his brush?" cries Alan, fiercely. "Ay, that's
- the man. In he steps, and gets papers from King George, to be
- so-called King's factor on the lands of Appin. And at first he
- sings small, and is hail-fellow-well-met with Sheamus -- that's
- James of the Glens, my chieftain's agent. But by-and-by, that
- came to his ears that I have just told you; how the poor commons
- of Appin, the farmers and the crofters and the boumen, were
- wringing their very plaids to get a second rent, and send it
- over-seas for Ardshiel and his poor bairns. What was it ye
- called it, when I told ye?"
-
- "I called it noble, Alan," said I.
-
- "And you little better than a common Whig!" cries Alan. "But
- when it came to Colin Roy, the black Campbell blood in him ran
- wild. He sat gnashing his teeth at the wine table. What! should
- a Stewart get a bite of bread, and him not be able to prevent it?
- Ah! Red Fox, if ever I hold you at a gun's end, the Lord have
- pity upon ye!" (Alan stopped to swallow down his anger.) "Well,
- David, what does he do? He declares all the farms to let. And,
- thinks he, in his black heart, 'I'll soon get other tenants
- that'll overbid these Stewarts, and Maccolls, and Macrobs' (for
- these are all names in my clan, David); 'and then,' thinks he,
- 'Ardshiel will have to hold his bonnet on a French roadside.'"
-
- "Well," said I, "what followed?"
-
- Alan laid down his pipe, which he had long since suffered to go
- out, and set his two hands upon his knees.
-
- "Ay," said he, "ye'll never guess that! For these same Stewarts,
- and Maccolls, and Macrobs (that had two rents to pay, one to King
- George by stark force, and one to Ardshiel by natural kindness)
- offered him a better price than any Campbell in all broad
- Scotland; and far he sent seeking them -- as far as to the sides
- of Clyde and the cross of Edinburgh -- seeking, and fleeching,
- and begging them to come, where there was a Stewart to be starved
- and a red-headed hound of a Campbell to be pleasured!"
-
- "Well, Alan," said I, "that is a strange story, and a fine one,
- too. And Whig as I may be, I am glad the man was beaten."
-
- "Him beaten?" echoed Alan. "It's little ye ken of Campbells, and
- less of the Red Fox. Him beaten? No: nor will be, till his
- blood's on the hillside! But if the day comes, David man, that I
- can find time and leisure for a bit of hunting, there grows not
- enough heather in all Scotland to hide him from my vengeance!"
-
- "Man Alan," said I, "ye are neither very wise nor very Christian
- to blow off so many words of anger. They will do the man ye call
- the Fox no harm, and yourself no good. Tell me your tale plainly
- out. What did he next?"
-
- "And that's a good observe, David," said Alan. "Troth and
- indeed, they will do him no harm; the more's the pity! And
- barring that about Christianity (of which my opinion is quite
- otherwise, or I would be nae Christian), I am much of your mind."
-
- "Opinion here or opinion there," said I, "it's a kent thing that
- Christianity forbids revenge."
-
- "Ay" said he, "it's well seen it was a Campbell taught ye! It
- would be a convenient world for them and their sort, if there was
- no such a thing as a lad and a gun behind a heather bush! But
- that's nothing to the point. This is what he did."
-
- "Ay" said I, "come to that."
-
- "Well, David," said he, "since he couldnae be rid of the loyal
- commons by fair means, he swore he would be rid of them by foul.
- Ardshiel was to starve: that was the thing he aimed at. And
- since them that fed him in his exile wouldnae be bought out --
- right or wrong, he would drive them out. Therefore he sent for
- lawyers, and papers, and red-coats to stand at his back. And the
- kindly folk of that country must all pack and tramp, every
- father's son out of his father's house, and out of the place
- where he was bred and fed, and played when he was a callant. And
- who are to succeed them? Bare-leggit beggars! King George is to
- whistle for his rents; he maun dow with less; he can spread his
- butter thinner: what cares Red Colin? If he can hurt Ardshiel, he
- has his wish; if he can pluck the meat from my chieftain's table,
- and the bit toys out of his children's hands, he will gang hame
- singing to Glenure!"
-
- "Let me have a word," said I. "Be sure, if they take less rents,
- be sure Government has a finger in the pie. It's not this
- Campbell's fault, man -- it's his orders. And if ye killed this
- Colin to-morrow, what better would ye be? There would be another
- factor in his shoes, as fast as spur can drive."
-
- "Ye're a good lad in a fight," said Alan; "but, man! ye have Whig
- blood in ye!"
-
- He spoke kindly enough, but there was so much anger under his
- contempt that I thought it was wise to change the conversation.
- I expressed my wonder how, with the Highlands covered with
- troops, and guarded like a city in a siege, a man in his
- situation could come and go without arrest.
-
- "It's easier than ye would think," said Alan. "A bare hillside
- (ye see) is like all one road; if there's a sentry at one place,
- ye just go by another. And then the heather's a great help. And
- everywhere there are friends' houses and friends' byres and
- haystacks. And besides, when folk talk of a country covered with
- troops, it's but a kind of a byword at the best. A soldier
- covers nae mair of it than his boot-soles. I have fished a water
- with a sentry on the other side of the brae, and killed a fine
- trout; and I have sat in a heather bush within six feet of
- another, and learned a real bonny tune from his whistling. This
- was it," said he, and whistled me the air.
-
- "And then, besides," he continued, "it's no sae bad now as it was
- in forty-six. The Hielands are what they call pacified. Small
- wonder, with never a gun or a sword left from Cantyre to Cape
- Wrath, but what tenty[17] folk have hidden in their thatch! But
- what I would like to ken, David, is just how long? Not long, ye
- would think, with men like Ardshiel in exile and men like the Red
- Fox sitting birling the wine and oppressing the poor at home.
- But it's a kittle thing to decide what folk'll bear, and what
- they will not. Or why would Red Colin be riding his horse all
- over my poor country of Appin, and never a pretty lad to put a
- bullet in him?"
-
- [17] Careful.
-
-
- And with this Alan fell into a muse, and for a long time sate
- very sad and silent.
-
- I will add the rest of what I have to say about my friend, that
- he was skilled in all kinds of music, but principally pipe-music;
- was a well-considered poet in his own tongue; had read several
- books both in French and English; was a dead shot, a good angler,
- and an excellent fencer with the small sword as well as with his
- own particular weapon. For his faults, they were on his face,
- and I now knew them all. But the worst of them, his childish
- propensity to take offence and to pick quarrels, he greatly laid
- aside in my case, out of regard for the battle of the
- round-house. But whether it was because I had done well myself,
- or because I had been a witness of his own much greater prowess,
- is more than I can tell. For though he had a great taste for
- courage in other men, yet he admired it most in Alan Breck.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- THE LOSS OF THE BRIG
-
- It was already late at night, and as dark as it ever would be at
- that season of the year (and that is to say, it was still pretty
- bright), when Hoseason clapped his head into the round-house
- door.
-
- "Here," said he, "come out and see if ye can pilot."
-
- "Is this one of your tricks?" asked Alan.
-
- "Do I look like tricks?" cries the captain. "I have other things
- to think of -- my brig's in danger!"
-
- By the concerned look of his face, and, above all, by the sharp
- tones in which he spoke of his brig, it was plain to both of us
- he was in deadly earnest; and so Alan and I, with no great fear
- of treachery, stepped on deck.
-
- The sky was clear; it blew hard, and was bitter cold; a great
- deal of daylight lingered; and the moon, which was nearly full,
- shone brightly. The brig was close hauled, so as to round the
- southwest corner of the Island of Mull, the hills of which (and
- Ben More above them all, with a wisp of mist upon the top of it)
- lay full upon the lar-board bow. Though it was no good point of
- sailing for the Covenant, she tore through the seas at a great
- rate, pitching and straining, and pursued by the westerly swell.
-
- Altogether it was no such ill night to keep the seas in; and I
- had begun to wonder what it was that sat so heavily upon the
- captain, when the brig rising suddenly on the top of a high
- swell, he pointed and cried to us to look. Away on the lee bow,
- a thing like a fountain rose out of the moonlit sea, and
- immediately after we heard a low sound of roaring.
-
- "What do ye call that?" asked the captain, gloomily.
-
- "The sea breaking on a reef," said Alan. "And now ye ken where
- it is; and what better would ye have?"
-
- "Ay," said Hoseason, "if it was the only one."
-
- And sure enough, just as he spoke there came a second fountain
- farther to the south.
-
- "There!" said Hoseason. "Ye see for yourself. If I had kent of
- these reefs, if I had had a chart, or if Shuan had been spared,
- it's not sixty guineas, no, nor six hundred, would have made me
- risk my brig in sic a stoneyard! But you, sir, that was to pilot
- us, have ye never a word?"
-
- "I'm thinking," said Alan, "these'll be what they call the Torran
- Rocks."
-
- "Are there many of them?" says the captain.
-
- "Truly, sir, I am nae pilot," said Alan; "but it sticks in my
- mind there are ten miles of them."
-
- Mr. Riach and the captain looked at each other.
-
- "There's a way through them, I suppose?" said the captain.
-
- "Doubtless," said Alan, "but where? But it somehow runs in my
- mind once more that it is clearer under the land."
-
- "So?" said Hoseason. "We'll have to haul our wind then, Mr.
- Riach; we'll have to come as near in about the end of Mull as we
- can take her, sir; and even then we'll have the land to kep the
- wind off us, and that stoneyard on our lee. Well, we're in for
- it now, and may as well crack on."
-
- With that he gave an order to the steersman, and sent Riach to
- the foretop. There were only five men on deck, counting the
- officers; these being all that were fit (or, at least, both fit
- and willing) for their work. So, as I say, it fell to Mr. Riach
- to go aloft, and he sat there looking out and hailing the deck
- with news of all he saw.
-
- "The sea to the south is thick," he cried; and then, after a
- while, "it does seem clearer in by the land."
-
- "Well, sir," said Hoseason to Alan, "we'll try your way of it.
- But I think I might as well trust to a blind fiddler. Pray God
- you're right."
-
- "Pray God I am!" says Alan to me. "But where did I hear it?
- Well, well, it will be as it must."
-
- As we got nearer to the turn of the land the reefs began to be
- sown here and there on our very path; and Mr. Riach sometimes
- cried down to us to change the course. Sometimes, indeed, none
- too soon; for one reef was so close on the brig's weather board
- that when a sea burst upon it the lighter sprays fell upon her
- deck and wetted us like rain.
-
- The brightness of the night showed us these perils as clearly as
- by day, which was, perhaps, the more alarming. It showed me,
- too, the face of the captain as he stood by the steersman, now on
- one foot, now on the other, and sometimes blowing in his hands,
- but still listening and looking and as steady as steel. Neither
- he nor Mr. Riach had shown well in the fighting; but I saw they
- were brave in their own trade, and admired them all the more
- because I found Alan very white.
-
- "Ochone, David," says he, "this is no the kind of death I fancy!"
-
- "What, Alan!" I cried, "you're not afraid?"
-
- "No," said he, wetting his lips, "but you'll allow, yourself,
- it's a cold ending."
-
- By this time, now and then sheering to one side or the other to
- avoid a reef, but still hugging the wind and the land, we had got
- round Iona and begun to come alongside Mull. The tide at the
- tail of the land ran very strong, and threw the brig about. Two
- hands were put to the helm, and Hoseason himself would sometimes
- lend a help; and it was strange to see three strong men throw
- their weight upon the tiller, and it (like a living thing)
- struggle against and drive them back. This would have been the
- greater danger had not the sea been for some while free of
- obstacles. Mr. Riach, besides, announced from the top that he
- saw clear water ahead.
-
- "Ye were right," said Hoseason to Alan. "Ye have saved the brig,
- sir. I'll mind that when we come to clear accounts." And I
- believe he not only meant what he said, but would have done it;
- so high a place did the Covenant hold in his affections.
-
- But this is matter only for conjecture, things having gone
- otherwise than he forecast.
-
- "Keep her away a point," sings out Mr. Riach. "Reef to
- windward!"
-
- And just at the same time the tide caught the brig, and threw the
- wind out of her sails. She came round into the wind like a top,
- and the next moment struck the reef with such a dunch as threw us
- all flat upon the deck, and came near to shake Mr. Riach from his
- place upon the mast.
-
- I was on my feet in a minute. The reef on which we had struck
- was close in under the southwest end of Mull, off a little isle
- they call Earraid, which lay low and black upon the larboard.
- Sometimes the swell broke clean over us; sometimes it only ground
- the poor brig upon the reef, so that we could hear her beat
- herself to pieces; and what with the great noise of the sails,
- and the singing of the wind, and the flying of the spray in the
- moonlight, and the sense of danger, I think my head must have
- been partly turned, for I could scarcely understand the things I
- saw.
-
- Presently I observed Mr. Riach and the seamen busy round the
- skiff, and, still in the same blank, ran over to assist them; and
- as soon as I set my hand to work, my mind came clear again. It
- was no very easy task, for the skiff lay amidships and was full
- of hamper, and the breaking of the heavier seas continually
- forced us to give over and hold on; but we all wrought like
- horses while we could.
-
- Meanwhile such of the wounded as could move came clambering out
- of the fore-scuttle and began to help; while the rest that lay
- helpless in their bunks harrowed me with screaming and begging to
- be saved.
-
- The captain took no part. It seemed he was struck stupid. He
- stood holding by the shrouds, talking to himself and groaning out
- aloud whenever the ship hammered on the rock. His brig was like
- wife and child to him; he had looked on, day by day, at the
- mishandling of poor Ransome; but when it came to the brig, he
- seemed to suffer along with her.
-
- All the time of our working at the boat, I remember only one
- other thing: that I asked Alan, looking across at the shore, what
- country it was; and he answered, it was the worst possible for
- him, for it was a land of the Campbells.
-
- We had one of the wounded men told off to keep a watch upon the
- seas and cry us warning. Well, we had the boat about ready to be
- launched, when this man sang out pretty shrill: "For God's sake,
- hold on!" We knew by his tone that it was something more than
- ordinary; and sure enough, there followed a sea so huge that it
- lifted the brig right up and canted her over on her beam.
- Whether the cry came too late, or my hold was too weak, I know
- not; but at the sudden tilting of the ship I was cast clean over
- the bulwarks into the sea.
-
- I went down, and drank my fill, and then came up, and got a blink
- of the moon, and then down again. They say a man sinks a third
- time for good. I cannot be made like other folk, then; for I
- would not like to write how often I went down, or how often I
- came up again. All the while, I was being hurled along, and
- beaten upon and choked, and then swallowed whole; and the thing
- was so distracting to my wits, that I was neither sorry nor
- afraid.
-
- Presently, I found I was holding to a spar, which helped me
- somewhat. And then all of a sudden I was in quiet water, and
- began to come to myself.
-
- It was the spare yard I had got hold of, and I was amazed to see
- how far I had travelled from the brig. I hailed her, indeed; but
- it was plain she was already out of cry. She was still holding
- together; but whether or not they had yet launched the boat, I
- was too far off and too low down to see.
-
- While I was hailing the brig, I spied a tract of water lying
- between us where no great waves came, but which yet boiled white
- all over and bristled in the moon with rings and bubbles.
- Sometimes the whole tract swung to one side, like the tail of a
- live serpent; sometimes, for a glimpse, it would all disappear
- and then boil up again. What it was I had no guess, which for
- the time increased my fear of it; but I now know it must have
- been the roost or tide race, which had carried me away so fast
- and tumbled me about so cruelly, and at last, as if tired of that
- play, had flung out me and the spare yard upon its landward
- margin.
-
- I now lay quite becalmed, and began to feel that a man can die of
- cold as well as of drowning. The shores of Earraid were close
- in; I could see in the moonlight the dots of heather and the
- sparkling of the mica in the rocks.
-
- "Well," thought I to myself, "if I cannot get as far as that,
- it's strange!"
-
- I had no skill of swimming, Essen Water being small in our
- neighbourhood; but when I laid hold upon the yard with both arms,
- and kicked out with both feet, I soon begun to find that I was
- moving. Hard work it was, and mortally slow; but in about an
- hour of kicking and splashing, I had got well in between the
- points of a sandy bay surrounded by low hills.
-
- The sea was here quite quiet; there was no sound of any surf; the
- moon shone clear; and I thought in my heart I had never seen a
- place so desert and desolate. But it was dry land; and when at
- last it grew so shallow that I could leave the yard and wade
- ashore upon my feet, I cannot tell if I was more tired or more
- grateful. Both, at least, I was: tired as I never was before
- that night; and grateful to God as I trust I have been often,
- though never with more cause.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- THE ISLET
-
- With my stepping ashore I began the most unhappy part of my
- adventures. It was half-past twelve in the morning, and though
- the wind was broken by the land, it was a cold night. I dared
- not sit down (for I thought I should have frozen), but took off
- my shoes and walked to and fro upon the sand, bare-foot, and
- beating my breast with infinite weariness. There was no sound of
- man or cattle; not a cock crew, though it was about the hour of
- their first waking; only the surf broke outside in the distance,
- which put me in mind of my perils and those of my friend. To
- walk by the sea at that hour of the morning, and in a place so
- desert-like and lonesome, struck me with a kind of fear.
-
- As soon as the day began to break I put on my shoes and climbed a
- hill -- the ruggedest scramble I ever undertook-- falling, the
- whole way, between big blocks of granite, or leaping from one to
- another. When I got to the top the dawn was come. There was no
- sign of the brig, which must have lifted from the reef and sunk.
- The boat, too, was nowhere to be seen. There was never a sail
- upon the ocean; and in what I could see of the land was neither
- house nor man.
-
- I was afraid to think what had befallen my shipmates, and afraid
- to look longer at so empty a scene. What with my wet clothes and
- weariness, and my belly that now began to ache with hunger, I had
- enough to trouble me without that. So I set off eastward along
- the south coast, hoping to find a house where I might warm
- myself, and perhaps get news of those I had lost. And at the
- worst, I considered the sun would soon rise and dry my clothes.
-
- After a little, my way was stopped by a creek or inlet of the
- sea, which seemed to run pretty deep into the land; and as I had
- no means to get across, I must needs change my direction to go
- about the end of it. It was still the roughest kind of walking;
- indeed the whole, not only of Earraid, but of the neighbouring
- part of Mull (which they call the Ross) is nothing but a jumble
- of granite rocks with heather in among. At first the creek kept
- narrowing as I had looked to see; but presently to my surprise it
- began to widen out again. At this I scratched my head, but had
- still no notion of the truth: until at last I came to a rising
- ground, and it burst upon me all in a moment that I was cast upon
- a little barren isle, and cut off on every side by the salt seas.
-
- Instead of the sun rising to dry me, it came on to rain, with a
- thick mist; so that my case was lamentable.
-
- I stood in the rain, and shivered, and wondered what to do, till
- it occurred to me that perhaps the creek was fordable. Back I
- went to the narrowest point and waded in. But not three yards
- from shore, I plumped in head over ears; and if ever I was heard
- of more, it was rather by God's grace than my own prudence. I
- was no wetter (for that could hardly be), but I was all the
- colder for this mishap; and having lost another hope was the more
- unhappy.
-
- And now, all at once, the yard came in my head. What had carried
- me through the roost would surely serve me to cross this little
- quiet creek in safety. With that I set off, undaunted, across
- the top of the isle, to fetch and carry it back. It was a weary
- tramp in all ways, and if hope had not buoyed me up, I must have
- cast myself down and given up. Whether with the sea salt, or
- because I was growing fevered, I was distressed with thirst, and
- had to stop, as I went, and drink the peaty water out of the
- hags.
-
- I came to the bay at last, more dead than alive; and at the first
- glance, I thought the yard was something farther out than when I
- left it. In I went, for the third time, into the sea. The sand
- was smooth and firm, and shelved gradually down, so that I could
- wade out till the water was almost to my neck and the little
- waves splashed into my face. But at that depth my feet began to
- leave me, and I durst venture in no farther. As for the yard, I
- saw it bobbing very quietly some twenty feet beyond.
-
- I had borne up well until this last disappointment; but at that I
- came ashore, and flung myself down upon the sands and wept.
-
- The time I spent upon the island is still so horrible a thought
- to me, that I must pass it lightly over. In all the books I have
- read of people cast away, they had either their pockets full of
- tools, or a chest of things would be thrown upon the beach along
- with them, as if on purpose. My case was very different. I had
- nothing in my pockets but money and Alan's silver button; and
- being inland bred, I was as much short of knowledge as of means.
-
- I knew indeed that shell-fish were counted good to eat; and among
- the rocks of the isle I found a great plenty of limpets, which at
- first I could scarcely strike from their places, not knowing
- quickness to be needful. There were, besides, some of the little
- shells that we call buckies; I think periwinkle is the English
- name. Of these two I made my whole diet, devouring them cold and
- raw as I found them; and so hungry was I, that at first they
- seemed to me delicious.
-
- Perhaps they were out of season, or perhaps there was something
- wrong in the sea about my island. But at least I had no sooner
- eaten my first meal than I was seized with giddiness and
- retching, and lay for a long time no better than dead. A second
- trial of the same food (indeed I had no other) did better with
- me, and revived my strength. But as long as I was on the island,
- I never knew what to expect when I had eaten; sometimes all was
- well, and sometimes I was thrown into a miserable sickness; nor
- could I ever distinguish what particular fish it was that hurt
- me.
-
- All day it streamed rain; the island ran like a sop, there was no
- dry spot to be found; and when I lay down that night, between two
- boulders that made a kind of roof, my feet were in a bog.
-
- The second day I crossed the island to all sides. There was no
- one part of it better than another; it was all desolate and
- rocky; nothing living on it but game birds which I lacked the
- means to kill, and the gulls which haunted the outlying rocks in
- a prodigious number. But the creek, or strait, that cut off the
- isle from the main-land of the Ross, opened out on the north into
- a bay, and the bay again opened into the Sound of Iona; and it
- was the neighbourhood of this place that I chose to be my home;
- though if I had thought upon the very name of home in such a
- spot, I must have burst out weeping.
-
- I had good reasons for my choice. There was in this part of the
- isle a little hut of a house like a pig's hut, where fishers used
- to sleep when they came there upon their business; but the turf
- roof of it had fallen entirely in; so that the hut was of no use
- to me, and gave me less shelter than my rocks. What was more
- important, the shell-fish on which I lived grew there in great
- plenty; when the tide was out I could gather a peck at a time:
- and this was doubtless a convenience. But the other reason went
- deeper. I had become in no way used to the horrid solitude of
- the isle, but still looked round me on all sides (like a man that
- was hunted), between fear and hope that I might see some human
- creature coming. Now, from a little up the hillside over the
- bay, I could catch a sight of the great, ancient church and the
- roofs of the people's houses in Iona. And on the other hand,
- over the low country of the Ross, I saw smoke go up, morning and
- evening, as if from a homestead in a hollow of the land.
-
- I used to watch this smoke, when I was wet and cold, and had my
- head half turned with loneliness; and think of the fireside and
- the company, till my heart burned. It was the same with the
- roofs of Iona. Altogether, this sight I had of men's homes and
- comfortable lives, although it put a point on my own sufferings,
- yet it kept hope alive, and helped me to eat my raw shell-fish
- (which had soon grown to be a disgust), and saved me from the
- sense of horror I had whenever I was quite alone with dead rocks,
- and fowls, and the rain, and the cold sea.
-
- I say it kept hope alive; and indeed it seemed impossible that I
- should be left to die on the shores of my own country, and within
- view of a church-tower and the smoke of men's houses. But the
- second day passed; and though as long as the light lasted I kept
- a bright look-out for boats on the Sound or men passing on the
- Ross, no help came near me. It still rained, and I turned in to
- sleep, as wet as ever, and with a cruel sore throat, but a little
- comforted, perhaps, by having said good-night to my next
- neighbours, the people of Iona.
-
- Charles the Second declared a man could stay outdoors more days
- in the year in the climate of England than in any other. This
- was very like a king, with a palace at his back and changes of
- dry clothes. But he must have had better luck on his flight from
- Worcester than I had on that miserable isle. It was the height
- of the summer; yet it rained for more than twenty-four hours, and
- did not clear until the afternoon of the third day.
-
- This was the day of incidents. In the morning I saw a red deer,
- a buck with a fine spread of antlers, standing in the rain on the
- top of the island; but he had scarce seen me rise from under my
- rock, before he trotted off upon the other side. I supposed he
- must have swum the strait; though what should bring any creature
- to Earraid, was more than I could fancy.
-
- A little after, as I was jumping about after my limpets, I was
- startled by a guinea-piece, which fell upon a rock in front of me
- and glanced off into the sea. When the sailors gave me my money
- again, they kept back not only about a third of the whole sum,
- but my father's leather purse; so that from that day out, I
- carried my gold loose in a pocket with a button. I now saw there
- must be a hole, and clapped my hand to the place in a great
- hurry. But this was to lock the stable door after the steed was
- stolen. I had left the shore at Queensferry with near on fifty
- pounds; now I found no more than two guinea-pieces and a silver
- shilling.
-
- It is true I picked up a third guinea a little after, where it
- lay shining on a piece of turf. That made a fortune of three
- pounds and four shillings, English money, for a lad, the rightful
- heir of an estate, and now starving on an isle at the extreme end
- of the wild Highlands.
-
- This state of my affairs dashed me still further; and, indeed my
- plight on that third morning was truly pitiful. My clothes were
- beginning to rot; my stockings in particular were quite worn
- through, so that my shanks went naked; my hands had grown quite
- soft with the continual soaking; my throat was very sore, my
- strength had much abated, and my heart so turned against the
- horrid stuff I was condemned to eat, that the very sight of it
- came near to sicken me.
-
- And yet the worst was not yet come.
-
- There is a pretty high rock on the northwest of Earraid, which
- (because it had a flat top and overlooked the Sound) I was much
- in the habit of frequenting; not that ever I stayed in one place,
- save when asleep, my misery giving me no rest. Indeed, I wore
- myself down with continual and aimless goings and comings in the
- rain.
-
- As soon, however, as the sun came out, I lay down on the top of
- that rock to dry myself. The comfort of the sunshine is a thing
- I cannot tell. It set me thinking hopefully of my deliverance,
- of which I had begun to despair; and I scanned the sea and the
- Ross with a fresh interest. On the south of my rock, a part of
- the island jutted out and hid the open ocean, so that a boat
- could thus come quite near me upon that side, and I be none the
- wiser.
-
- Well, all of a sudden, a coble with a brown sail and a pair of
- fishers aboard of it, came flying round that corner of the isle,
- bound for Iona. I shouted out, and then fell on my knees on the
- rock and reached up my hands and prayed to them. They were near
- enough to hear -- I could even see the colour of their hair; and
- there was no doubt but they observed me, for they cried out in
- the Gaelic tongue, and laughed. But the boat never turned aside,
- and flew on, right before my eyes, for Iona.
-
- I could not believe such wickedness, and ran along the shore from
- rock to rock, crying on them piteously. even after they were out
- of reach of my voice, I still cried and waved to them; and when
- they were quite gone, I thought my heart would have burst. All
- the time of my troubles I wept only twice. Once, when I could
- not reach the yard, and now, the second time, when these fishers
- turned a deaf ear to my cries. But this time I wept and roared
- like a wicked child, tearing up the turf with my nails, and
- grinding my face in the earth. If a wish would kill men, those
- two fishers would never have seen morning, and I should likely
- have died upon my island.
-
- When I was a little over my anger, I must eat again, but with
- such loathing of the mess as I could now scarce control. Sure
- enough, I should have done as well to fast, for my fishes
- poisoned me again. I had all my first pains; my throat was so
- sore I could scarce swallow; I had a fit of strong shuddering,
- which clucked my teeth together; and there came on me that
- dreadful sense of illness, which we have no name for either in
- Scotch or English. I thought I should have died, and made my
- peace with God, forgiving all men, even my uncle and the fishers;
- and as soon as I had thus made up my mind to the worst, clearness
- came upon me; I observed the night was falling dry; my clothes
- were dried a good deal; truly, I was in a better case than ever
- before, since I had landed on the isle; and so I got to sleep at
- last, with a thought of gratitude.
-
- The next day (which was the fourth of this horrible life of mine)
- I found my bodily strength run very low. But the sun shone, the
- air was sweet, and what I managed to eat of the shell-fish agreed
- well with me and revived my courage.
-
- I was scarce back on my rock (where I went always the first thing
- after I had eaten) before I observed a boat coming down the
- Sound, and with her head, as I thought, in my direction.
-
- I began at once to hope and fear exceedingly; for I thought these
- men might have thought better of their cruelty and be coming back
- to my assistance. But another disappointment, such as
- yesterday's, was more than I could bear. I turned my back,
- accordingly, upon the sea, and did not look again till I had
- counted many hundreds. The boat was still heading for the
- island. The next time I counted the full thousand, as slowly as
- I could, my heart beating so as to hurt me. And then it was out
- of all question. She was coming straight to Earraid!
-
- I could no longer hold myself back, but ran to the seaside and
- out, from one rock to another, as far as I could go. It is a
- marvel I was not drowned; for when I was brought to a stand at
- last, my legs shook under me, and my mouth was so dry, I must wet
- it with the sea-water before I was able to shout.
-
- All this time the boat was coming on; and now I was able to
- perceive it was the same boat and the same two men as yesterday.
- This I knew by their hair, which the one had of a bright yellow
- and the other black. But now there was a third man along with
- them, who looked to be of a better class.
-
- As soon as they were come within easy speech, they let down their
- sail and lay quiet. In spite of my supplications, they drew no
- nearer in, and what frightened me most of all, the new man
- tee-hee'd with laughter as he talked and looked at me.
-
- Then he stood up in the boat and addressed me a long while,
- speaking fast and with many wavings of his hand. I told him I had
- no Gaelic; and at this he became very angry, and I began to
- suspect he thought he was talking English. Listening very close,
- I caught the word "whateffer" several times; but all the rest was
- Gaelic and might have been Greek and Hebrew for me.
-
- "Whatever," said I, to show him I had caught a word.
-
- "Yes, yes -- yes, yes," says he, and then he looked at the other
- men, as much as to say, "I told you I spoke English," and began
- again as hard as ever in the Gaelic.
-
- This time I picked out another word, "tide." Then I had a flash
- of hope. I remembered he was always waving his hand towards the
- mainland of the Ross.
-
- "Do you mean when the tide is out --?" I cried, and could not
- finish.
-
- "Yes, yes," said he. "Tide."
-
- At that I turned tail upon their boat (where my adviser had once
- more begun to tee-hee with laughter), leaped back the way I had
- come, from one stone to another, and set off running across the
- isle as I had never run before. In about half an hour I came out
- upon the shores of the creek; and, sure enough, it was shrunk
- into a little trickle of water, through which I dashed, not above
- my knees, and landed with a shout on the main island.
-
- A sea-bred boy would not have stayed a day on Earraid; which is
- only what they call a tidal islet, and except in the bottom of
- the neaps, can be entered and left twice in every twenty-four
- hours, either dry-shod, or at the most by wading. Even I, who
- had the tide going out and in before me in the bay, and even
- watched for the ebbs, the better to get my shellfish -- even I (I
- say) if I had sat down to think, instead of raging at my fate,
- must have soon guessed the secret, and got free. It was no
- wonder the fishers had not understood me. The wonder was rather
- that they had ever guessed my pitiful illusion, and taken the
- trouble to come back. I had starved with cold and hunger on that
- island for close upon one hundred hours. But for the fishers, I
- might have left my bones there, in pure folly. And even as it
- was, I had paid for it pretty dear, not only in past sufferings,
- but in my present case; being clothed like a beggar-man, scarce
- able to walk, and in great pain of my sore throat.
-
- I have seen wicked men and fools, a great many of both; and I
- believe they both get paid in the end; but the fools first.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: THROUGH THE ISLE OF MULL
-
- The Ross of Mull, which I had now got upon, was rugged and
- trackless, like the isle I had just left; being all bog, and
- brier, and big stone. There may be roads for them that know that
- country well; but for my part I had no better guide than my own
- nose, and no other landmark than Ben More.
-
- I aimed as well as I could for the smoke I had seen so often from
- the island; and with all my great weariness and the difficulty of
- the way came upon the house in the bottom of a little hollow
- about five or six at night. It was low and longish, roofed with
- turf and built of unmortared stones; and on a mound in front of
- it, an old gentleman sat smoking his pipe in the sun.
-
- With what little English he had, he gave me to understand that my
- shipmates had got safe ashore, and had broken bread in that very
- house on the day after.
-
- "Was there one," I asked, "dressed like a gentleman?"
-
- He said they all wore rough great-coats; but to be sure, the
- first of them, the one that came alone, wore breeches and
- stockings, while the rest had sailors' trousers.
-
- "Ah," said I, "and he would have a feathered hat?"
-
- He told me, no, that he was bareheaded like myself.
-
- At first I thought Alan might have lost his hat; and then the
- rain came in my mind, and I judged it more likely he had it out
- of harm's way under his great-coat. This set me smiling, partly
- because my friend was safe, partly to think of his vanity in
- dress.
-
- And then the old gentleman clapped his hand to his brow, and
- cried out that I must be the lad with the silver button.
-
- "Why, yes!" said I, in some wonder.
-
- "Well, then," said the old gentleman, "I have a word for you,
- that you are to follow your friend to his country, by Torosay."
-
- He then asked me how I had fared, and I told him my tale. A
- south-country man would certainly have laughed; but this old
- gentleman (I call him so because of his manners, for his clothes
- were dropping off his back) heard me all through with nothing but
- gravity and pity. When I had done, he took me by the hand, led
- me into his hut (it was no better) and presented me before his
- wife, as if she had been the Queen and I a duke.
-
- The good woman set oat-bread before me and a cold grouse, patting
- my shoulder and smiling to me all the time, for she had no
- English; and the old gentleman (not to be behind) brewed me a
- strong punch out of their country spirit. All the while I was
- eating, and after that when I was drinking the punch, I could
- scarce come to believe in my good fortune; and the house, though
- it was thick with the peat-smoke and as full of holes as a
- colander, seemed like a palace.
-
- The punch threw me in a strong sweat and a deep slumber; the good
- people let me lie; and it was near noon of the next day before I
- took the road, my throat already easier and my spirits quite
- restored by good fare and good news. The old gentleman, although
- I pressed him hard, would take no money, and gave me an old
- bonnet for my head; though I am free to own I was no sooner out
- of view of the house than I very jealously washed this gift of
- his in a wayside fountain.
-
- Thought I to myself: "If these are the wild Highlanders, I could
- wish my own folk wilder."
-
- I not only started late, but I must have wandered nearly half the
- time. True, I met plenty of people, grubbing in little miserable
- fields that would not keep a cat, or herding little kine about
- the bigness of asses. The Highland dress being forbidden by law
- since the rebellion, and the people condemned to the Lowland
- habit, which they much disliked, it was strange to see the
- variety of their array. Some went bare, only for a hanging cloak
- or great-coat, and carried their trousers on their backs like a
- useless burthen: some had made an imitation of the tartan with
- little parti-coloured stripes patched together like an old wife's
- quilt; others, again, still wore the Highland philabeg, but by
- putting a few stitches between the legs transformed it into a
- pair of trousers like a Dutchman's. All those makeshifts were
- condemned and punished, for the law was harshly applied, in hopes
- to break up the clan spirit; but in that out-of-the-way,
- sea-bound isle, there were few to make remarks and fewer to tell
- tales.
-
- They seemed in great poverty; which was no doubt natural, now
- that rapine was put down, and the chiefs kept no longer an open
- house; and the roads (even such a wandering, country by--track as
- the one I followed) were infested with beggars. And here again I
- marked a difference from my own part of the country. For our
- Lowland beggars -- even the gownsmen themselves, who beg by
- patent -- had a louting, flattering way with them, and if you
- gave them a plaek and asked change, would very civilly return you
- a boddle. But these Highland beggars stood on their dignity,
- asked alms only to buy snuff (by their account) and would give no
- change.
-
- To be sure, this was no concern of mine, except in so far as it
- entertained me by the way. What was much more to the purpose,
- few had any English, and these few (unless they were of the
- brotherhood of beggars) not very anxious to place it at my
- service. I knew Torosay to be my destination, and repeated the
- name to them and pointed; but instead of simply pointing in
- reply, they would give me a screed of the Gaelic that set me
- foolish; so it was small wonder if I went out of my road as often
- as I stayed in it.
-
- At last, about eight at night, and already very weary, I came to
- a lone house, where I asked admittance, and was refused, until I
- bethought me of the power of money in so poor a country, and held
- up one of my guineas in my finger and thumb. Thereupon, the man
- of the house, who had hitherto pretended to have no English, and
- driven me from his door by signals, suddenly began to speak as
- clearly as was needful, and agreed for five shillings to give me
- a night's lodging and guide me the next day to Torosay.
-
- I slept uneasily that night, fearing I should be robbed; but I
- might have spared myself the pain; for my host was no robber,
- only miserably poor and a great cheat. He was not alone in his
- poverty; for the next morning, we must go five miles about to the
- house of what he called a rich man to have one of my guineas
- changed. This was perhaps a rich man for Mull; he would have
- scarce been thought so in the south; for it took all he had --
- the whole house was turned upside down, and a neighbour brought
- under contribution, before he could scrape together twenty
- shillings in silver. The odd shilling he kept for himself,
- protesting he could ill afford to have so great a sum of money
- lying "locked up." For all that he was very courteous and well
- spoken, made us both sit down with his family to dinner, and
- brewed punch in a fine china bowl, over which my rascal guide
- grew so merry that he refused to start.
-
- I was for getting angry, and appealed to the rich man (Hector
- Maclean was his name), who had been a witness to our bargain and
- to my payment of the five shillings. But Maclean had taken his
- share of the punch, and vowed that no gentleman should leave his
- table after the bowl was brewed; so there was nothing for it but
- to sit and hear Jacobite toasts and Gaelic songs, till all were
- tipsy and staggered off to the bed or the barn for their night's
- rest.
-
- Next day (the fourth of my travels) we were up before five upon
- the clock; but my rascal guide got to the bottle at once, and it
- was three hours before I had him clear of the house, and then (as
- you shall hear) only for a worse disappointment.
-
- As long as we went down a heathery valley that lay before Mr.
- Maclean's house, all went well; only my guide looked constantly
- over his shoulder, and when I asked him the cause, only grinned
- at me. No sooner, however, had we crossed the back of a hill,
- and got out of sight of the house windows, than he told me
- Torosay lay right in front, and that a hill-top (which he pointed
- out) was my best landmark.
-
- "I care very little for that," said I, "since you are going with
- me."
-
- The impudent cheat answered me in the Gaelic that he had no
- English.
-
- "My fine fellow," I said, "I know very well your English comes
- and goes. Tell me what will bring it back? Is it more money you
- wish?"
-
- "Five shillings mair," said he, "and hersel' will bring ye
- there."
-
- I reflected awhile and then offered him two, which he accepted
- greedily, and insisted on having in his hands at once "for luck,"
- as he said, but I think it was rather for my misfortune.
-
- The two shillings carried him not quite as many miles; at the end
- of which distance, he sat down upon the wayside and took off his
- brogues from his feet, like a man about to rest.
-
- I was now red-hot. "Ha!" said I, "have you no more English?"
-
- He said impudently, "No."
-
- At that I boiled over, and lifted my hand to strike him; and he,
- drawing a knife from his rags, squatted back and grinned at me
- like a wildcat. At that, forgetting everything but my anger, I
- ran in upon him, put aside his knife with my left, and struck him
- in the mouth with the right. I was a strong lad and very angry,
- and he but a little man; and he went down before me heavily. By
- good luck, his knife flew out of his hand as he fell.
-
- I picked up both that and his brogues, wished him a good morning,
- and set off upon my way, leaving him barefoot and disarmed. I
- chuckled to myself as I went, being sure I was done with that
- rogue, for a variety of reasons. First, he knew he could have no
- more of my money; next, the brogues were worth in that country
- only a few pence; and, lastly, the knife, which was really a
- dagger, it was against the law for him to carry.
-
- In about half an hour of walk, I overtook a great, ragged man,
- moving pretty fast but feeling before him with a staff. He was
- quite blind, and told me he was a catechist, which should have
- put me at my ease. But his face went against me; it seemed dark
- and dangerous and secret; and presently, as we began to go on
- alongside, I saw the steel butt of a pistol sticking from under
- the flap of his coat-pocket. To carry such a thing meant a fine
- of fifteen pounds sterling upon a first offence, and
- transportation to the colonies upon a second. Nor could I quite
- see why a religious teacher should go armed, or what a blind man
- could be doing with a pistol.
-
- I told him about my guide, for I was proud of what I had done,
- and my vanity for once got the heels of my prudence. At the
- mention of the five shillings he cried out so loud that I made up
- my mind I should say nothing of the other two, and was glad he
- could not see my blushes.
-
- "Was it too much?" I asked, a little faltering.
-
- "Too much!" cries he. "Why, I will guide you to Torosay myself
- for a dram of brandy. And give you the great pleasure of my
- company (me that is a man of some learning) in the bargain."
-
- I said I did not see how a blind man could be a guide; but at
- that he laughed aloud, and said his stick was eyes enough for an
- eagle.
-
- "In the Isle of Mull, at least," says he, "where I know every
- stone and heather-bush by mark of head. See, now," he said,
- striking right and left, as if to make sure, "down there a burn
- is running; and at the head of it there stands a bit of a small
- hill with a stone cocked upon the top of that; and it's hard at
- the foot of the hill, that the way runs by to Torosay; and the
- way here, being for droves, is plainly trodden, and will show
- grassy through the heather."
-
- I had to own he was right in every feature, and told my wonder.
-
- "Ha!" says he, "that's nothing. Would ye believe me now, that
- before the Act came out, and when there were weepons in this
- country, I could shoot? Ay, could I!" cries he, and then with a
- leer: "If ye had such a thing as a pistol here to try with, I
- would show ye how it's done."
-
- I told him I had nothing of the sort, and gave him a wider berth.
- If he had known, his pistol stuck at that time quite plainly out
- of his pocket, and I could see the sun twinkle on the steel of
- the butt. But by the better luck for me, he knew nothing,
- thought all was covered, and lied on in the dark.
-
- He then began to question me cunningly, where I came from,
- whether I was rich, whether I could change a five-shilling piece
- for him (which he declared he had that moment in his sporran),
- and all the time he kept edging up to me and I avoiding him. We
- were now upon a sort of green cattle-track which crossed the
- hills towards Torosay, and we kept changing sides upon that like
- ancers in a reel. I had so plainly the upper-hand that my
- spirits rose, and indeed I took a pleasure in this game of
- blindman's buff; but the catechist grew angrier and angrier, and
- at last began to swear in Gaelic and to strike for my legs with
- his staff.
-
- Then I told him that, sure enough, I had a pistol in my pocket as
- well as he, and if he did not strike across the hill due south I
- would even blow his brains out.
-
- He became at once very polite, and after trying to soften me for
- some time, but quite in vain, he cursed me once more in Gaelic
- and took himself off. I watched him striding along, through bog
- and brier, tapping with his stick, until he turned the end of a
- hill and disappeared in the next hollow. Then I struck on again
- for Torosay, much better pleased to be alone than to travel with
- that man of learning. This was an unlucky day; and these two, of
- whom I had just rid myself, one after the other, were the two
- worst men I met with in the Highlands.
-
- At Torosay, on the Sound of Mull and looking over to the mainland
- of Morven, there was an inn with an innkeeper, who was a Maclean,
- it appeared, of a very high family; for to keep an inn is thought
- even more genteel in the Highlands than it is with us, perhaps as
- partaking of hospitality, or perhaps because the trade is idle
- and drunken. He spoke good English, and finding me to be
- something of a scholar, tried me first in French, where he easily
- beat me, and then in the Latin, in which I don't know which of us
- did best. This pleasant rivalry put us at once upon friendly
- terms; and I sat up and drank punch with him (or to be more
- correct, sat up and watched him drink it), until he was so tipsy
- that he wept upon my shoulder.
-
- I tried him, as if by accident, with a sight of Alan's button;
- but it was plain he had never seen or heard of it. Indeed, he
- bore some grudge against the family and friends of Ardshiel, and
- before he was drunk he read me a lampoon, in very good Latin, but
- with a very ill meaning, which he had made in elegiac verses upon
- a person of that house.
-
- When I told him of my catechist, he shook his head, and said I
- was lucky to have got clear off. "That is a very dangerous man,"
- he said; "Duncan Mackiegh is his name; he can shoot by the ear at
- several yards, and has been often accused of highway robberies,
- and once of murder."
-
- "The cream of it is," says I, "that he called himself a
- catechist."
-
- "And why should he not?" says he, "when that is what he is. It
- was Maclean of Duart gave it to him because he was blind. But
- perhaps it was a peety," says my host, "for he is always on the
- road, going from one place to another to hear the young folk say
- their religion; and, doubtless, that is a great temptation to the
- poor man."
-
- At last, when my landlord could drink no more, he showed me to a
- bed, and I lay down in very good spirits; having travelled the
- greater part of that big and crooked Island of Mull, from Earraid
- to Torosay, fifty miles as the crow flies, and (with my
- wanderings) much nearer a hundred, in four days and with little
- fatigue. Indeed I was by far in better heart and health of body
- at the end of that long tramp than I had been at the beginning.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE LAD WITH THE SILVER BUTTON: ACROSS MORVEN
-
- There is a regular ferry from Torosay to Kinlochaline on the
- mainland. Both shores of the Sound are in the country of the
- strong clan of the Macleans, and the people that passed the ferry
- with me were almost all of that clan. The skipper of the boat,
- on the other hand, was called Neil Roy Macrob; and since Macrob
- was one of the names of Alan's clansmen, and Alan himself had
- sent me to that ferry, I was eager to come to private speech of
- Neil Roy.
-
- In the crowded boat this was of course impossible, and the
- passage was a very slow affair. There was no wind, and as the
- boat was wretchedly equipped, we could pull but two oars on one
- side, and one on the other. The men gave way, however, with a
- good will, the passengers taking spells to help them, and the
- whole company giving the time in Gaelic boat-songs. And what
- with the songs, and the sea-air, and the good-nature and spirit
- of all concerned, and the bright weather, the passage was a
- pretty thing to have seen.
-
- But there was one melancholy part. In the mouth of Loch Aline we
- found a great sea-going ship at anchor; and this I supposed at
- first to be one of the King's cruisers which were kept along that
- coast, both summer and winter, to prevent communication with the
- French. As we got a little nearer, it became plain she was a
- ship of merchandise; and what still more puzzled me, not only her
- decks, but the sea-beach also, were quite black with people, and
- skiffs were continually plying to and fro between them. Yet
- nearer, and there began to come to our ears a great sound of
- mourning, the people on board and those on the shore crying and
- lamenting one to another so as to pierce the heart.
-
- Then I understood this was an emigrant ship bound for the
- American colonies.
-
- We put the ferry-boat alongside, and the exiles leaned over the
- bulwarks, weeping and reaching out their hands to my
- fellow-passengers, among whom they counted some near friends.
- How long this might have gone on I do not know, for they seemed
- to have no sense of time: but at last the captain of the ship,
- who seemed near beside himself (and no great wonder) in the midst
- of this crying and confusion, came to the side and begged us to
- depart.
-
- Thereupon Neil sheered off; and the chief singer in our boat
- struck into a melancholy air, which was presently taken up both
- by the emigrants and their friends upon the beach, so that it
- sounded from all sides like a lament for the dying. I saw the
- tears run down the cheeks of the men and women in the boat, even
- as they bent at the oars; and the circumstances and the music of
- the song (which is one called "Lochaber no more") were highly
- affecting even to myself.
-
- At Kinlochaline I got Neil Roy upon one side on the beach, and
- said I made sure he was one of Appin's men.
-
- "And what for no?" said he.
-
- "I am seeking somebody," said I; "and it comes in my mind that
- you will have news of him. Alan Breck Stewart is his name." And
- very foolishly, instead of showing him the button, I sought to
- pass a shilling in his hand.
-
- At this he drew back. "I am very much affronted," he said; "and
- this is not the way that one shentleman should behave to another
- at all. The man you ask for is in France; but if he was in my
- sporran," says he, "and your belly full of shillings, I would not
- hurt a hair upon his body."
-
- I saw I had gone the wrong way to work, and without wasting time
- upon apologies, showed him the button lying in the hollow of my
- palm.
-
- "Aweel, aweel," said Neil; "and I think ye might have begun with
- that end of the stick, whatever! But if ye are the lad with the
- silver button, all is well, and I have the word to see that ye
- come safe. But if ye will pardon me to speak plainly," says he,
- "there is a name that you should never take into your mouth, and
- that is the name of Alan Breck; and there is a thing that ye
- would never do, and that is to offer your dirty money to a
- Hieland shentleman."
-
- It was not very easy to apologise; for I could scarce tell him
- (what was the truth) that I had never dreamed he would set up to
- be a gentleman until he told me so. Neil on his part had no wish
- to prolong his dealings with me, only to fulfil his orders and be
- done with it; and he made haste to give me my route. This was to
- lie the night in Kinlochaline in the public inn; to cross Morven
- the next day to Ardgour, and lie the night in the house of one
- John of the Claymore, who was warned that I might come; the third
- day, to be set across one loch at Corran and another at
- Balachulish, and then ask my way to the house of James of the
- Glens, at Aucharn in Duror of Appin. There was a good deal of
- ferrying, as you hear; the sea in all this part running deep into
- the mountains and winding about their roots. It makes the
- country strong to hold and difficult to travel, but full of
- prodigious wild and dreadful prospects.
-
- I had some other advice from Neil: to speak with no one by the
- way, to avoid Whigs, Campbells, and the "red-soldiers;" to leave
- the road and lie in a bush if I saw any of the latter coming,
- "for it was never chancy to meet in with them;" and in brief, to
- conduct myself like a robber or a Jacobite agent, as perhaps Neil
- thought me.
-
- The inn at Kinlochaline was the most beggarly vile place that
- ever pigs were styed in, full of smoke, vermin, and silent
- Highlanders. I was not only discontented with my lodging, but
- with myself for my mismanagement of Neil, and thought I could
- hardly be worse off. But very wrongly, as I was soon to see; for
- I had not been half an hour at the inn (standing in the door most
- of the time, to ease my eyes from the peat smoke) when a
- thunderstorm came close by, the springs broke in a little hill on
- which the inn stood, and one end of the house became a running
- water. Places of public entertainment were bad enough all over
- Scotland in those days; yet it was a wonder to myself, when I had
- to go from the fireside to the bed in which I slept, wading over
- the shoes.
-
- Early in my next day's journey I overtook a little, stout, solemn
- man, walking very slowly with his toes turned out, sometimes
- reading in a book and sometimes marking the place with his
- finger, and dressed decently and plainly in something of a
- clerical style.
-
- This I found to be another catechist, but of a different order
- from the blind man of Mull: being indeed one of those sent out by
- the Edinburgh Society for Propagating Christian Knowledge, to
- evangelise the more savage places of the Highlands. His name was
- Henderland; he spoke with the broad south-country tongue, which I
- was beginning to weary for the sound of; and besides common
- countryship, we soon found we had a more particular bond of
- interest. For my good friend, the minister of Essendean, had
- translated into the Gaelic in his by-time a number of hymns and
- pious books which Henderland used in his work, and held in great
- esteem. Indeed, it was one of these he was carrying and reading
- when we met.
-
- We fell in company at once, our ways lying together as far as to
- Kingairloch. As we went, he stopped and spoke with all the
- wayfarers and workers that we met or passed; and though of course
- I could not tell what they discoursed about, yet I judged Mr.
- Henderland must be well liked in the countryside, for I observed
- many of them to bring out their mulls and share a pinch of snuff
- with him.
-
- I told him as far in my affairs as I judged wise; as far, that
- is, as they were none of Alan's; and gave Balachulish as the
- place I was travelling to, to meet a friend; for I thought
- Aucharn, or even Duror, would be too particular, and might put
- him on the scent.
-
- On his part, he told me much of his work and the people he worked
- among, the hiding priests and Jacobites, the Disarming Act, the
- dress, and many other curiosities of the time and place. He
- seemed moderate; blaming Parliament in several points, and
- especially because they had framed the Act more severely against
- those who wore the dress than against those who carried weapons.
-
- This moderation put it in my mind to question him of the Red Fox
- and the Appin tenants; questions which, I thought, would seem
- natural enough in the mouth of one travelling to that country.
-
-
-
- He said it was a bad business. "It's wonderful," said he, "where
- the tenants find the money, for their life is mere starvation.
- (Ye don't carry such a thing as snuff, do ye, Mr. Balfour? No.
- Well, I'm better wanting it.) But these tenants (as I was
- saying) are doubtless partly driven to it. James Stewart in
- Duror (that's him they call James of the Glens) is half-brother
- to Ardshiel, the captain of the clan; and he is a man much looked
- up to, and drives very hard. And then there's one they call Alan
- Breck--"
-
- "Ah!" I cried, "what of him?"
-
- "What of the wind that bloweth where it listeth?" said
- Henderland. "He's here and awa; here to-day and gone to-morrow:
- a fair heather-cat. He might be glowering at the two of us out
- of yon whin-bush, and I wouldnae wonder! Ye'll no carry such a
- thing as snuff, will ye?"
-
- I told him no, and that he had asked the same thing more than
- once.
-
- "It's highly possible," said he, sighing. "But it seems strange
- ye shouldnae carry it. However, as I was saying, this Alan Breck
- is a bold, desperate customer, and well kent to be James's right
- hand. His life is forfeit already; he would boggle at naething;
- and maybe, if a tenant-body was to hang back he would get a dirk
- in his wame."
-
- "You make a poor story of it all, Mr. Henderland," said I. "If
- it is all fear upon both sides, I care to hear no more of it."
-
- "Na," said Mr. Henderland, "but there's love too, and self-denial
- that should put the like of you and me to shame. There's
- something fine about it; no perhaps Christian, but humanly fine.
- Even Alan Breck, by all that I hear, is a chield to be respected.
- There's many a lying sneck-draw sits close in kirk in our own
- part of the country, and stands well in the world's eye, and
- maybe is a far worse man, Mr. Balfour, than yon misguided shedder
- of man's blood. Ay, ay, we might take a lesson by them. -- Ye'll
- perhaps think I've been too long in the Hielands?" he added,
- smiling to me.
-
- I told him not at all; that I had seen much to admire among the
- Highlanders; and if he came to that, Mr. Campbell himself was a
- Highlander.
-
- "Ay," said he, "that's true. It's a fine blood."
-
- "And what is the King's agent about?" I asked.
-
- "Colin Campbell?" says Henderland. "Putting his head in a bees'
- byke!"
-
- "He is to turn the tenants out by force, I hear?" said I.
-
- "Yes," says he, "but the business has gone back and forth, as
- folk say. First, James of the Glens rode to Edinburgh, and got
- some lawyer (a Stewart, nae doubt -- they all hing together like
- bats in a steeple) and had the proceedings stayed. And then
- Colin Campbell cam' in again, and had the upper-hand before the
- Barons of Exchequer. And now they tell me the first of the
- tenants are to flit to-morrow. It's to begin at Duror under
- James's very windows, which doesnae seem wise by my humble way of
- it."
-
- "Do you think they'll fight?" I asked.
-
- "Well," says Henderland, "they're disarmed -- or supposed to be
- -- for there's still a good deal of cold iron lying by in quiet
- places. And then Colin Campbell has the sogers coming. But for
- all that, if I was his lady wife, I wouldnae be well pleased till
- I got him home again. They're queer customers, the Appin
- Stewarts."
-
- I asked if they were worse than their neighbours.
-
- "No they," said he. "And that's the worst part of it. For if
- Colin Roy can get his business done in Appin, he has it all to
- begin again in the next country, which they call Mamore, and
- which is one of the countries of the Camerons. He's King's
- Factor upon both, and from both he has to drive out the tenants;
- and indeed, Mr. Balfour (to be open with ye), it's my belief that
- if he escapes the one lot, he'll get his death by the other."
-
- So we continued talking and walking the great part of the, day;
- until at last, Mr. Henderland after expressing his delight in my
- company, and satisfaction at meeting with a friend of Mr.
- Campbell's ("whom," says he, "I will make bold to call that sweet
- singer of our covenanted Zion"), proposed that I should make a
- short stage, and lie the night in his house a little beyond
- Kingairloch. To say truth, I was overjoyed; for I had no great
- desire for John of the Claymore, and since my double
- misadventure, first with the guide and next with the gentleman
- skipper, I stood in some fear of any Highland stranger.
- Accordingly we shook hands upon the bargain, and came in the
- afternoon to a small house, standing alone by the shore of the
- Linnhe Loch. The sun was already gone from the desert mountains
- of Ardgour upon the hither side, but shone on those of Appin on
- the farther; the loch lay as still as a lake, only the gulls were
- crying round the sides of it; and the whole place seemed solemn
- and uncouth.
-
- We had no sooner come to the door of Mr. Henderland's dwelling,
- than to my great surprise (for I was now used to the politeness
- of Highlanders) he burst rudely past me, dashed into the room,
- caught up a jar and a small horn-spoon, and began ladling snuff
- into his nose in most excessive quantities. Then he had a hearty
- fit of sneezing, and looked round upon me with a rather silly
- smile.
-
- "It's a vow I took," says he. "I took a vow upon me that I
- wouldnae carry it. Doubtless it's a great privation; but when I
- think upon the martyrs, not only to the Scottish Covenant but to
- other points of Christianity, I think shame to mind it."
-
- As soon as we had eaten (and porridge and whey was the best of
- the good man's diet) he took a grave face and said he had a duty
- to perform by Mr. Campbell, and that was to inquire into my state
- of mind towards God. I was inclined to smile at him since the
- business of the snuff; but he had not spoken long before he
- brought the tears into my eyes. There are two things that men
- should never weary of, goodness and humility; we get none too
- much of them in this rough world among cold, proud people; but
- Mr. Henderland had their very speech upon his tongue. And though
- I was a good deal puffed up with my adventures and with having
- come off, as the saying is, with flying colours; yet he soon had
- me on my knees beside a simple, poor old man, and both proud and
- glad to be there.
-
- Before we went to bed he offered me sixpence to help me on my
- way, out of a scanty store he kept in the turf wall of his house;
- at which excess of goodness I knew not what to do. But at last
- he was so earnest with me that I thought it the more mannerly
- part to let him have his way, and so left him poorer than myself.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- THE DEATH OF THE RED FOX
-
- The next day Mr. Henderland found for me a man who had a boat of
- his own and was to cross the Linnhe Loch that afternoon into
- Appin, fishing. Him he prevailed on to take me, for he was one
- of his flock; and in this way I saved a long day's travel and the
- price of the two public ferries I must otherwise have passed.
-
- It was near noon before we set out; a dark day with clouds, and
- the sun shining upon little patches. The sea was here very deep
- and still, and had scarce a wave upon it; so that I must put the
- water to my lips before I could believe it to be truly salt. The
- mountains on either side were high, rough and barren, very black
- and gloomy in the shadow of the clouds, but all silver-laced with
- little watercourses where the sun shone upon them. It seemed a
- hard country, this of Appin, for people to care as much about as
- Alan did.
-
- There was but one thing to mention. A little after we had
- started, the sun shone upon a little moving clump of scarlet
- close in along the water-side to the north. It was much of the
- same red as soldiers' coats; every now and then, too, there came
- little sparks and lightnings, as though the sun had struck upon
- bright steel.
-
- I asked my boatman what it should be, and he answered he supposed
- it was some of the red soldiers coming from Fort William into
- Appin, against the poor tenantry of the country. Well, it was a
- sad sight to me; and whether it was because of my thoughts of
- Alan, or from something prophetic in my bosom, although this was
- but the second time I had seen King George's troops, I had no
- good will to them.
-
- At last we came so near the point of land at the entering in of
- Loch Leven that I begged to be set on shore. My boatman (who was
- an honest fellow and mindful of his promise to the catechist)
- would fain have carried me on to Balachulish; but as this was to
- take me farther from my secret destination, I insisted, and was
- set on shore at last under the wood of Lettermore (or Lettervore,
- for I have heard it both ways) in Alan's country of Appin.
-
- This was a wood of birches, growing on a steep, craggy side of a
- mountain that overhung the loch. It had many openings and ferny
- howes; and a road or bridle track ran north and south through the
- midst of it, by the edge of which, where was a spring, I sat down
- to eat some oat-bread of Mr. Henderland's and think upon my
- situation.
-
- Here I was not only troubled by a cloud of stinging midges, but
- far more by the doubts of my mind. What I ought to do, why I was
- going to join myself with an outlaw and a would-be murderer like
- Alan, whether I should not be acting more like a man of sense to
- tramp back to the south country direct, by my own guidance and at
- my own charges, and what Mr. Campbell or even Mr. Henderland
- would think of me if they should ever learn my folly and
- presumption: these were the doubts that now began to come in on
- me stronger than ever.
-
- As I was so sitting and thinking, a sound of men and horses came
- to me through the wood; and presently after, at a turning of the
- road, I saw four travellers come into view. The way was in this
- part so rough and narrow that they came single and led their
- horses by the reins. The first was a great, red-headed
- gentleman, of an imperious and flushed face, who carried his hat
- in his hand and fanned himself, for he was in a breathing heat.
- The second, by his decent black garb and white wig, I correctly
- took to be a lawyer. The third was a servant, and wore some part
- of his clothes in tartan, which showed that his master was of a
- Highland family, and either an outlaw or else in singular good
- odour with the Government, since the wearing of tartan was
- against the Act. If I had been better versed in these things, I
- would have known the tartan to be of the Argyle (or Campbell)
- colours. This servant had a good-sized portmanteau strapped on
- his horse, and a net of lemons (to brew punch with) hanging at
- the saddle-bow; as was often enough the custom with luxurious
- travellers in that part of the country.
-
- As for the fourth, who brought up the tail, I had seen his like
- before, and knew him at once to be a sheriff's officer.
-
- I had no sooner seen these people coming than I made up my mind
- (for no reason that I can tell) to go through with my adventure;
- and when the first came alongside of me, I rose up from the
- bracken and asked him the way to Aucharn.
-
- He stopped and looked at me, as I thought, a little oddly; and
- then, turning to the lawyer, "Mungo," said he, "there's many a
- man would think this more of a warning than two pyats. Here am I
- on my road to Duror on the job ye ken; and here is a young lad
- starts up out of the bracken, and speers if I am on the way to
- Aucharn."
-
- "Glenure," said the other, "this is an ill subject for jesting."
-
- These two had now drawn close up and were gazing at me, while the
- two followers had halted about a stone-cast in the rear.
-
- "And what seek ye in Aucharn?" said Colin Roy Campbell of
- Glenure, him they called the Red Fox; for he it was that I had
- stopped.
-
- "The man that lives there," said I.
-
- "James of the Glens," says Glenure, musingly; and then to the
- lawyer: "Is he gathering his people, think ye?"
-
- "Anyway," says the lawyer, "we shall do better to bide where we
- are, and let the soldiers rally us."
-
- "If you are concerned for me," said I, "I am neither of his
- people nor yours, but an honest subject of King George, owing no
- man and fearing no man."
-
- "Why, very well said," replies the Factor. "But if I may make so
- bold as ask, what does this honest man so far from his country?
- and why does he come seeking the brother of Ardshiel? I have
- power here, I must tell you. I am King's Factor upon several of
- these estates, and have twelve files of soldiers at my back."
-
- "I have heard a waif word in the country," said I, a little
- nettled, "that you were a hard man to drive."
-
- He still kept looking at me, as if in doubt.
-
- "Well," said he, at last, "your tongue is bold; but I am no
- unfriend to plainness. If ye had asked me the way to the door of
- James Stewart on any other day but this, I would have set ye
- right and bidden ye God speed. But to-day -- eh, Mungo?" And he
- turned again to look at the lawyer.
-
- But just as he turned there came the shot of a firelock from
- higher up the hill; and with the very sound of it Glenure fell
- upon the road.
-
- "O, I am dead!" he cried, several times over.
-
- The lawyer had caught him up and held him in his arms, the
- servant standing over and clasping his hands. And now the
- wounded man looked from one to another with scared eyes, and
- there was a change in his voice, that went to the heart.
-
- "Take care of yourselves," says he. "I am dead."
-
- He tried to open his clothes as if to look for the wound, but his
- fingers slipped on the buttons. With that he gave a great sigh,
- his head rolled on his shoulder, and he passed away.
-
- The lawyer said never a word, but his face was as sharp as a pen
- and as white as the dead man's; the servant broke out into a
- great noise of crying and weeping, like a child; and I, on my
- side, stood staring at them in a kind of horror. The sheriff's
- officer had run back at the first sound of the shot, to hasten
- the coming of the soldiers.
-
- At last the lawyer laid down the dead man in his blood upon the
- road, and got to his own feet with a kind of stagger.
-
- I believe it was his movement that brought me to my senses; for
- he had no sooner done so than I began to scramble up the hill,
- crying out, "The murderer! the murderer!"
-
- So little a time had elapsed, that when I got to the top of the
- first steepness, and could see some part of the open mountain,
- the murderer was still moving away at no great distance. He was
- a big man, in a black coat, with metal buttons, and carried a
- long fowling-piece.
-
- "Here!" I cried. "I see him!"
-
- At that the murderer gave a little, quick look over his shoulder,
- and began to run. The next moment he was lost in a fringe of
- birches; then he came out again on the upper side, where I could
- see him climbing like a jackanapes, for that part was again very
- steep; and then he dipped behind a shoulder, and I saw him no
- more.
-
- All this time I had been running on my side, and had got a good
- way up, when a voice cried upon me to stand.
-
- I was at the edge of the upper wood, and so now, when I halted
- and looked back, I saw all the open part of the hill below me.
-
- The lawyer and the sheriff's officer were standing just above the
- road, crying and waving on me to come back; and on their left,
- the red-coats, musket in hand, were beginning to struggle singly
- out of the lower wood.
-
- "Why should I come back?" I cried. "Come you on!"
-
- "Ten pounds if ye take that lad!" cried the lawyer. "He's an
- accomplice. He was posted here to hold us in talk."
-
- At that word (which I could hear quite plainly, though it was to
- the soldiers and not to me that he was crying it) my heart came
- in my mouth with quite a new kind of terror. Indeed, it is one
- thing to stand the danger of your life, and quite another to run
- the peril of both life and character. The thing, besides, had
- come so suddenly, like thunder out of a clear sky, that I was all
- amazed and helpless.
-
- The soldiers began to spread, some of them to run, and others to
- put up their pieces and cover me; and still I stood.
-
- "Jock[18] in here among the trees," said a voice close by.
-
- [18]Duck.
-
-
- Indeed, I scarce knew what I was doing, but I obeyed; and as I
- did so, I heard the firelocks bang and the balls whistle in the
- birches.
-
- Just inside the shelter of the trees I found Alan Breck standing,
- with a fishing-rod. He gave me no salutation; indeed it was no
- time for civilities; only "Come!" says he, and set off running
- along the side of the mountain towards Balaehulish; and I, like a
- sheep, to follow him.
-
- Now we ran among the birches; now stooping behind low humps upon
- the mountain-side; now crawling on all fours among the heather.
- The pace was deadly: my heart seemed bursting against my ribs;
- and I had neither time to think nor breath to speak with. Only I
- remember seeing with wonder, that Alan every now and then would
- straighten himself to his full height and look back; and every
- time he did so, there came a great far-away cheering and crying
- of the soldiers.
-
- Quarter of an hour later, Alan stopped, clapped down flat in the
- heather, and turned to me.
-
- "Now," said he, "it's earnest. Do as I do, for your life."
-
- And at the same speed, but now with infinitely more precaution,
- we traced back again across the mountain-side by the same way
- that we had come, only perhaps higher; till at last Alan threw
- himself down in the upper wood of Lettermore, where I had found
- him at the first, and lay, with his face in the bracken, panting
- like a dog.
-
- My own sides so ached, my head so swam, my tongue so hung out of
- my mouth with heat and dryness, that I lay beside him like one
- dead.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- I TALK WITH ALAN IN THE WOOD OF LETTERMORE
-
- Alan was the first to come round. He rose, went to the border of
- the wood, peered out a little, and then returned and sat down.
-
- "Well," said he, "yon was a hot burst, David."
-
- I said nothing, nor so much as lifted my face. I had seen murder
- done, and a great, ruddy, jovial gentleman struck out of life in
- a moment; the pity of that sight was still sore within me, and
- yet that was but a part of my concern. Here was murder done upon
- the man Alan hated; here was Alan skulking in the trees and
- running from the troops; and whether his was the hand that fired
- or only the head that ordered, signified but little. By my way
- of it, my only friend in that wild country was blood-guilty in
- the first degree; I held him in horror; I could not look upon his
- face; I would have rather lain alone in the rain on my cold isle,
- than in that warm wood beside a murderer.
-
- "Are ye still wearied?" he asked again.
-
- "No," said I, still with my face in the bracken; "no, I am not
- wearied now, and I can speak. You and me must twine,"[19] I said.
- "I liked you very well, Alan, but your ways are not mine, and
- they're not God's: and the short and the long of it is just that
- we must twine."
-
- [19] Part.
-
-
- "I will hardly twine from ye, David, without some kind of reason
- for the same," said Alan, mighty gravely. "If ye ken anything
- against my reputation, it's the least thing that ye should do,
- for old acquaintance' sake, to let me hear the name of it; and if
- ye have only taken a distaste to my society, it will be proper
- for me to judge if I'm insulted."
-
- "Alan," said I, "what is the sense of this? Ye ken very well yon
- Campbell-man lies in his blood upon the road."
-
- He was silent for a little; then says he, "Did ever ye hear tell
- of the story of the Man and the Good People?" -- by which he
- meant the fairies.
-
- "No," said I, "nor do I want to hear it."
-
- "With your permission, Mr. Balfour, I will tell it you,
- whatever," says Alan. "The man, ye should ken, was cast upon a
- rock in the sea, where it appears the Good People were in use to
- come and rest as they went through to Ireland. The name of this
- rock is called the Skerryvore, and it's not far from where we
- suffered ship-wreck. Well, it seems the man cried so sore, if he
- could just see his little bairn before he died! that at last the
- king of the Good People took peety upon him, and sent one flying
- that brought back the bairn in a poke[20] and laid it down beside
- the man where he lay sleeping. So when the man woke, there was a
- poke beside him and something into the inside of it that moved.
- Well, it seems he was one of these gentry that think aye the
- worst of things; and for greater security, he stuck his dirk
- throughout that poke before he opened it, and there was his bairn
- dead. I am thinking to myself, Mr. Balfour, that you and the man
- are very much alike."
-
- [20] Bag.
-
-
- "Do you mean you had no hand in it?" cried I, sitting up.
-
- "I will tell you first of all, Mr. Balfour of Shaws, as one
- friend to another," said Alan, "that if I were going to kill a
- gentleman, it would not be in my own country, to bring trouble on
- my clan; and I would not go wanting sword and gun, and with a
- long fishing-rod upon my back."
-
- "Well," said I, "that's true!"
-
- "And now," continued Alan, taking out his dirk and laying his
- hand upon it in a certain manner, "I swear upon the Holy Iron I
- had neither art nor part, act nor thought in it."
-
- "I thank God for that!" cried I, and offered him my hand.
-
- He did not appear to see it.
-
- "And here is a great deal of work about a Campbell!" said he.
- "They are not so scarce, that I ken!"
-
- "At least," said I, "you cannot justly blame me, for you know
- very well what you told me in the brig. But the temptation and
- the act are different, I thank God again for that. We may all be
- tempted; but to take a life in cold blood, Alan!" And I could
- say no more for the moment. "And do you know who did it?" I
- added. "Do you know that man in the black coat?"
-
- "I have nae clear mind about his coat," said Alan cunningly, "but
- it sticks in my head that it was blue."
-
- "Blue or black, did ye know him?" said I.
-
- "I couldnae just conscientiously swear to him," says Alan. "He
- gaed very close by me, to be sure, but it's a strange thing that
- I should just have been tying my brogues."
-
- "Can you swear that you don't know him, Alan?" I cried, half
- angered, half in a mind to laugh at his evasions.
-
- "Not yet," says he; "but I've a grand memory for forgetting,
- David."
-
- "And yet there was one thing I saw clearly," said I; "and that
- was, that you exposed yourself and me to draw the soldiers."
-
- "It's very likely," said Alan; "and so would any gentleman. You
- and me were innocent of that transaction."
-
- "The better reason, since we were falsely suspected, that we
- should get clear," I cried. "The innocent should surely come
- before the guilty."
-
- "Why, David," said he, "the innocent have aye a chance to get
- assoiled in court; but for the lad that shot the bullet, I think
- the best place for him will be the heather. Them that havenae
- dipped their hands in any little difficulty, should be very
- mindful of the case of them that have. And that is the good
- Christianity. For if it was the other way round about, and the
- lad whom I couldnae just clearly see had been in our shoes, and
- we in his (as might very well have been), I think we would be a
- good deal obliged to him oursel's if he would draw the soldiers."
-
- When it came to this, I gave Alan up. But he looked so innocent
- all the time, and was in such clear good faith in what he said,
- and so ready to sacrifice himself for what he deemed his duty,
- that my mouth was closed. Mr. Henderland's words came back to
- me: that we ourselves might take a lesson by these wild
- Highlanders. Well, here I had taken mine. Alan's morals were
- all tail-first; but he was ready to give his life for them, such
- as they were.
-
- "Alan," said I, "I'll not say it's the good Christianity as I
- understand it, but it's good enough. And here I offer ye my hand
- for the second time."
-
- Whereupon he gave me both of his, saying surely I had cast a
- spell upon him, for he could forgive me anything. Then he grew
- very grave, and said we had not much time to throw away, but must
- both flee that country: he, because he was a deserter, and the
- whole of Appin would now be searched like a chamber, and every
- one obliged to give a good account of himself; and I, because I
- was certainly involved in the murder.
-
- "O!" says I, willing to give him a little lesson, "I have no fear
- of the justice of my country."
-
- "As if this was your country!" said he. "Or as if ye would be
- tried here, in a country of Stewarts!"
-
- "It's all Scotland," said I.
-
- "Man, I whiles wonder at ye," said Alan. "This is a Campbell
- that's been killed. Well, it'll be tried in Inverara, the
- Campbells' head place; with fifteen Campbells in the jury-box and
- the biggest Campbell of all (and that's the Duke) sitting cocking
- on the bench. Justice, David? The same justice, by all the
- world, as Glenure found awhile ago at the roadside."
-
- This frightened me a little, I confess, and would have frightened
- me more if I had known how nearly exact were Alan's predictions;
- indeed it was but in one point that he exaggerated, there being
- but eleven Campbells on the jury; though as the other four were
- equally in the Duke's dependence, it mattered less than might
- appear. Still, I cried out that he was unjust to the Duke of
- Argyle, who (for all he was a Whig) was yet a wise and honest
- nobleman.
-
- "Hoot!" said Alan, "the man's a Whig, nae doubt; but I would
- never deny he was a good chieftain to his clan. And what would
- the clan think if there was a Campbell shot, and naebody hanged,
- and their own chief the Justice General? But I have often
- observed," says Alan, "that you Low-country bodies have no clear
- idea of what's right and wrong."
-
- At this I did at last laugh out aloud, when to my surprise, Alan
- joined in, and laughed as merrily as myself.
-
- "Na, na," said he, "we're in the Hielands, David; and when I tell
- ye to run, take my word and run. Nae doubt it's a hard thing to
- skulk and starve in the Heather, but it's harder yet to lie
- shackled in a red-coat prison."
-
- I asked him whither we should flee; and as he told me "to the
- Lowlands," I was a little better inclined to go with him; for,
- indeed, I was growing impatient to get back and have the
- upper-hand of my uncle. Besides, Alan made so sure there would
- be no question of justice in the matter, that I began to be
- afraid he might be right. Of all deaths, I would truly like
- least to die by the gallows; and the picture of that uncanny
- instrument came into my head with extraordinary clearness (as I
- had once seen it engraved at the top of a pedlar's ballad) and
- took away my appetite for courts of justice.
-
- "I'll chance it, Alan," said I. "I'll go with you."
-
- "But mind you," said Alan, "it's no small thing. Ye maun lie
- bare and hard, and brook many an empty belly. Your bed shall be
- the moorcock's, and your life shall be like the hunted deer's,
- and ye shall sleep with your hand upon your weapons. Ay, man, ye
- shall taigle many a weary foot, or we get clear! I tell ye this
- at the start, for it's a life that I ken well. But if ye ask
- what other chance ye have, I answer: Nane. Either take to the
- heather with me, or else hang."
-
- "And that's a choice very easily made," said I; and we shook
- hands upon it.
-
- "And now let's take another keek at the red-coats," says Alan,
- and he led me to the north-eastern fringe of the wood.
-
- Looking out between the trees, we could see a great side of
- mountain, running down exceeding steep into the waters of the
- loch. It was a rough part, all hanging stone, and heather, and
- big scrogs of birchwood; and away at the far end towards
- Balachulish, little wee red soldiers were dipping up and down
- over hill and howe, and growing smaller every minute. There was
- no cheering now, for I think they had other uses for what breath
- was left them; but they still stuck to the trail, and doubtless
- thought that we were close in front of them.
-
- Alan watched them, smiling to himself.
-
- "Ay," said he, "they'll be gey weary before they've got to the
- end of that employ! And so you and me, David, can sit down and
- eat a bite, and breathe a bit longer, and take a dram from my
- bottle. Then we'll strike for Aucharn, the house of my kinsman,
- James of the Glens, where I must get my clothes, and my arms, and
- money to carry us along; and then, David, we'll cry, 'Forth,
- Fortune!' and take a cast among the heather."
-
- So we sat again and ate and drank, in a place whence we could see
- the sun going down into a field of great, wild, and houseless
- mountains, such as I was now condemned to wander in with my
- companion. Partly as we so sat, and partly afterwards, on the
- way to Aucharn, each of us narrated his adventures; and I shall
- here set down so much of Alan's as seems either curious or
- needful.
-
- It appears he ran to the bulwarks as soon as the wave was passed;
- saw me, and lost me, and saw me again, as I tumbled in the roost;
- and at last had one glimpse of me clinging on the yard. It was
- this that put him in some hope I would maybe get to land after
- all, and made him leave those clues and messages which had
- brought me (for my sins) to that unlucky country of Appin.
-
- In the meanwhile, those still on the brig had got the skiff
- launched, and one or two were on board of her already, when there
- came a second wave greater than the first, and heaved the brig
- out of her place, and would certainly have sent her to the
- bottom, had she not struck and caught on some projection of the
- reef. When she had struck first, it had been bows-on, so that
- the stern had hitherto been lowest. But now her stern was thrown
- in the air, and the bows plunged under the sea; and with that,
- the water began to pour into the fore-scuttle like the pouring of
- a mill-dam.
-
- It took the colour out of Alan's face, even to tell what
- followed. For there were still two men lying impotent in their
- bunks; and these, seeing the water pour in and thinking the ship
- had foundered, began to cry out aloud, and that with such
- harrowing cries that all who were on deck tumbled one after
- another into the skiff and fell to their oars. They were not two
- hundred yards away, when there came a third great sea; and at
- that the brig lifted clean over the reef; her canvas filled for a
- moment, and she seemed to sail in chase of them, but settling all
- the while; and presently she drew down and down, as if a hand was
- drawing her; and the sea closed over the Covenant of Dysart.
-
- Never a word they spoke as they pulled ashore, being stunned with
- the horror of that screaming; but they had scarce set foot upon
- the beach when Hoseason woke up, as if out of a muse, and bade
- them lay hands upon Alan. They hung back indeed, having little
- taste for the employment; but Hoseason was like a fiend, crying
- that Alan was alone, that he had a great sum about him, that he
- had been the means of losing the brig and drowning all their
- comrades, and that here was both revenge and wealth upon a single
- cast. It was seven against one; in that part of the shore there
- was no rock that Alan could set his back to; and the sailors
- began to spread out and come behind him.
-
- "And then," said Alan, "the little man with the red head -- I
- havenae mind of the name that he is called."
-
- "Riach," said I.
-
- "Ay" said Alan, "Riach! Well, it was him that took up the clubs
- for me, asked the men if they werenae feared of a judgment, and,
- says he 'Dod, I'll put my back to the Hielandman's mysel'.'
- That's none such an entirely bad little man, yon little man with
- the red head," said Alan. "He has some spunks of decency."
-
- "Well," said I, "he was kind to me in his way."
-
- "And so he was to Alan," said he; "and by my troth, I found his
- way a very good one! But ye see, David, the loss of the ship and
- the cries of these poor lads sat very ill upon the man; and I'm
- thinking that would be the cause of it."
-
- "Well, I would think so," says I; "for he was as keen as any of
- the rest at the beginning. But how did Hoseason take it?"
-
- "It sticks in my mind that he would take it very ill," says Alan.
- "But the little man cried to me to run, and indeed I thought it
- was a good observe, and ran. The last that I saw they were all
- in a knot upon the beach, like folk that were not agreeing very
- well together."
-
- "What do you mean by that?" said I.
-
- "Well, the fists were going," said Alan; "and I saw one man go
- down like a pair of breeks. But I thought it would be better no
- to wait. Ye see there's a strip of Campbells in that end of
- Mull, which is no good company for a gentleman like me. If it
- hadnae been for that I would have waited and looked for ye
- mysel', let alone giving a hand to the little man." (It was
- droll how Alan dwelt on Mr. Riach's stature, for, to say the
- truth, the one was not much smaller than the other.) "So," says
- he, continuing, "I set my best foot forward, and whenever I met
- in with any one I cried out there was a wreck ashore. Man, they
- didnae sto p to fash with me! Ye should have seen them linking
- for the beach! And when they got there they found they had had
- the pleasure of a run, which is aye good for a Campbell. I'm
- thinking it was a judgment on the clan that the brig went down in
- the lump and didnae break. But it was a very unlucky thing for
- you, that same; for if any wreck had come ashore they would have
- hunted high and low, and would soon have found ye."
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- THE HOUSE OF FEAR
-
- Night fell as we were walking, and the clouds, which had broken
- up in the afternoon, settled in and thickened, so that it fell,
- for the season of the year, extremely dark. The way we went was
- over rough mountainsides; and though Alan pushed on with an
- assured manner, I could by no means see how he directed himself.
-
- At last, about half-past ten of the clock, we came to the top of
- a brae, and saw lights below us. It seemed a house door stood
- open and let out a beam of fire and candle-light; and all round
- the house and steading five or six persons were moving hurriedly
- about, each carrying a lighted brand.
-
- "James must have tint his wits," said Alan. "If this was the
- soldiers instead of you and me, he would be in a bonny mess. But
- I dare say he'll have a sentry on the road, and he would ken well
- enough no soldiers would find the way that we came."
-
- Hereupon he whistled three times, in a particular manner. It was
- strange to see how, at the first sound of it, all the moving
- torches came to a stand, as if the bearers were affrighted; and
- how, at the third, the bustle began again as before.
-
- Having thus set folks' minds at rest, we came down the brae, and
- were met at the yard gate (for this place was like a well-doing
- farm) by a tall, handsome man of more than fifty, who cried out
- to Alan in the Gaelic.
-
- "James Stewart," said Alan, "I will ask ye to speak in Scotch,
- for here is a young gentleman with me that has nane of the other.
- This is him," he added, putting his arm through mine, "a young
- gentleman of the Lowlands, and a laird in his country too, but I
- am thinking it will be the better for his health if we give his
- name the go-by."
-
- James of the Glens turned to me for a moment, and greeted me
- courteously enough; the next he had turned to Alan.
-
- "This has been a dreadful accident," he cried. "It will bring
- trouble on the country." And he wrung his hands.
-
- "Hoots!" said Alan, "ye must take the sour with the sweet, man.
- Colin Roy is dead, and be thankful for that!"
-
- "Ay" said James, "and by my troth, I wish he was alive again!
- It's all very fine to blow and boast beforehand; but now it's
- done, Alan; and who's to bear the wyte[21] of it? The accident
- fell out in Appin -- mind ye that, Alan; it's Appin that must
- pay; and I am a man that has a family."
-
- [21]Blame.
-
-
- While this was going on I looked about me at the servants. Some
- were on ladders, digging in the thatch of the house or the farm
- buildings, from which they brought out guns, swords, and
- different weapons of war; others carried them away; and by the
- sound of mattock blows from somewhere farther down the brae, I
- suppose they buried them. Though they were all so busy, there
- prevailed no kind of order in their efforts; men struggled
- together for the same gun and ran into each other with their
- burning torches; and James was continually turning about from his
- talk with Alan, to cry out orders which were apparently never
- understood. The faces in the torchlight were like those of
- people overborne with hurry and panic; and though none spoke
- above his breath, their speech sounded both anxious and angry.
-
- It was about this time that a lassie came out of the house
- carrying a pack or bundle; and it has often made me smile to
- think how Alan's instinct awoke at the mere sight of it.
-
- "What's that the lassie has?" he asked.
-
- "We're just setting the house in order, Alan," said James, in his
- frightened and somewhat fawning way. "They'll search Appin with
- candles, and we must have all things straight. We're digging the
- bit guns and swords into the moss, ye see; and these, I am
- thinking, will be your ain French clothes. We'll be to bury
- them, I believe."
-
- "Bury my French clothes!" cried Alan. "Troth, no!" And he laid
- hold upon the packet and retired into the barn to shift himself,
- recommending me in the meanwhile to his kinsman.
-
- James carried me accordingly into the kitchen, and sat down with
- me at table, smiling and talking at first in a very hospitable
- manner. But presently the gloom returned upon him; he sat
- frowning and biting his fingers; only remembered me from time to
- time; and then gave me but a word or two and a poor smile, and
- back into his private terrors. His wife sat by the fire and
- wept, with her face in her hands; his eldest son was crouched
- upon the floor, running over a great mass of papers and now and
- again setting one alight and burning it to the bitter end; all
- the while a servant lass with a red face was rummaging about the
- room, in a blind hurry of fear, and whimpering as she went; and
- every now and again one of the men would thrust in his face from
- the yard, and cry for orders.
-
- At last James could keep his seat no longer, and begged my
- permission to be so unmannerly as walk about. "I am but poor
- company altogether, sir," says he, "but I can think of nothing
- but this dreadful accident, and the trouble it is like to bring
- upon quite innocent persons."
-
- A little after he observed his son burning a paper which he
- thought should have been kept; and at that his excitement burst
- out so that it was painful to witness. He struck the lad
- repeatedly.
-
- "Are you gone gyte?"[22] he cried. "Do you wish to hang your
- father?" and forgetful of my presence, carried on at him a long
- time together in the Gaelic, the young man answering nothing;
- only the wife, at the name of hanging, throwing her apron over
- her face and sobbing out louder than before.
-
- [22] Mad.
-
-
- This was all wretched for a stranger like myself to hear and see;
- and I was right glad when Alan returned, looking like himself in
- his fine French clothes, though (to be sure) they were now grown
- almost too battered and withered to deserve the name of fine. I
- was then taken out in my turn by another of the sons, and given
- that change of clothing of which I had stood so long in need, and
- a pair of Highland brogues made of deer-leather, rather strange
- at first, but after a little practice very easy to the feet.
-
- By the time I came back Alan must have told his story; for it
- seemed understood that I was to fly with him, and they were all
- busy upon our equipment. They gave us each a sword and pistols,
- though I professed my inability to use the former; and with
- these, and some ammunition, a bag of oatmeal, an iron pan, and a
- bottle of right French brandy, we were ready for the heather.
- Money, indeed, was lacking. I had about two guineas left; Alan's
- belt having been despatched by another hand, that trusty
- messenger had no more than seventeen-pence to his whole fortune;
- and as for James, it appears he had brought himself so low with
- journeys to Edinburgh and legal expenses on behalf of the
- tenants, that he could only scrape together
- three-and-five-pence-halfpenny, the most of it in coppers.
-
- "This'll no do," said Alan.
-
- "Ye must find a safe bit somewhere near by," said James, "and get
- word sent to me. Ye see, ye'll have to get this business
- prettily off, Alan. This is no time to be stayed for a guinea or
- two. They're sure to get wind of ye, sure to seek ye, and by my
- way of it, sure to lay on ye the wyte of this day's accident. If
- it falls on you, it falls on me that am your near kinsman and
- harboured ye while ye were in the country. And if it comes on
- me----" he paused, and bit his fingers, with a white face. "It
- would be a painful thing for our friends if I was to hang," said
- he.
-
- "It would be an ill day for Appin," says Alan.
-
- "It's a day that sticks in my throat," said James. "O man, man,
- man--man Alan! you and me have spoken like two fools!" he cried,
- striking his hand upon the wall so that the house rang again.
-
- "Well, and that's true, too," said Alan; "and my friend from the
- Lowlands here" (nodding at me) "gave me a good word upon that
- head, if I would only have listened to him."
-
- "But see here," said James, returning to his former manner, "if
- they lay me by the heels, Alan, it's then that you'll be needing
- the money. For with all that I have said and that you have said,
- it will look very black against the two of us; do ye mark that?
- Well, follow me out, and ye'll, I'll see that I'll have to get a
- paper out against ye mysel'; have to offer a reward for ye; ay,
- will I! It's a sore thing to do between such near friends; but
- if I get the dirdum[23] of this dreadful accident, I'll have to
- fend for myself, man. Do ye see that?"
-
- [23] Blame.
-
-
- He spoke with a pleading earnestness, taking Alan by the breast
- of the coat.
-
- "Ay" said Alan, "I see that."
-
- "And ye'll have to be clear of the country, Alan -- ay, and clear
- of Scotland -- you and your friend from the Lowlands, too. For
- I'll have to paper your friend from the Lowlands. Ye see that,
- Alan -- say that ye see that!"
-
- I thought Alan flushed a bit. "This is unco hard on me that
- brought him here, James," said he, throwing his head back. "It's
- like making me a traitor!"
-
- "Now, Alan, man!" cried James. "Look things in the face! He'll
- be papered anyway; Mungo Campbell'll be sure to paper him; what
- matters if I paper him too? And then, Alan, I am a man that has
- a family." And then, after a little pause on both sides, "And,
- Alan, it'll be a jury of Campbells," said he.
-
- "There's one thing," said Alan, musingly, "that naebody kens his
- name."
-
- "Nor yet they shallnae, Alan! There's my hand on that," cried
- James, for all the world as if he had really known my name and
- was foregoing some advantage. "But just the habit he was in, and
- what he looked like, and his age, and the like? I couldnae well
- do less."
-
- "I wonder at your father's son," cried Alan, sternly. "Would ye
- sell the lad with a gift? Would ye change his clothes and then
- betray him?"
-
- "No, no, Alan," said James. "No, no: the habit he took off -- the
- habit Mungo saw him in." But I thought he seemed crestfallen;
- indeed, he was clutching at every straw, and all the time, I dare
- say, saw the faces of his hereditary foes on the bench, and in
- the jury-box, and the gallows in the background.
-
- "Well, sir" says Alan, turning to me, "what say ye to, that? Ye
- are here under the safeguard of my honour; and it's my part to
- see nothing done but what shall please you."
-
- "I have but one word to say," said I; "for to all this dispute I
- am a perfect stranger. But the plain common-sense is to set the
- blame where it belongs, and that is on the man who fired the
- shot. Paper him, as ye call it, set the hunt on him; and let
- honest, innocent folk show their faces in safety." But at this
- both Alan and James cried out in horror; bidding me hold my
- tongue, for that was not to be thought of; and asking me what the
- Camerons would think? (which confirmed me, it must have been a
- Cameron from Mamore that did the act) and if I did not see that
- the lad might be caught? "Ye havenae surely thought of that?"
- said they, with such innocent earnestness, that my hands dropped
- at my side and I despaired of argument.
-
- "Very well, then," said I, "paper me, if you please, paper Alan,
- paper King George! We're all three innocent, and that seems to
- be what's wanted. But at least, sir," said I to James,
- recovering from my little fit of annoyance, "I am Alan's friend,
- and if I can be helpful to friends of his, I will not stumble at
- the risk."
-
- I thought it best to put a fair face on my consent, for I saw
- Alan troubled; and, besides (thinks I to myself), as soon as my
- back is turned, they will paper me, as they call it, whether I
- consent or not. But in this I saw I was wrong; for I had no
- sooner said the words, than Mrs. Stewart leaped out of her chair,
- came running over to us, and wept first upon my neck and then on
- Alan's, blessing God for our goodness to her family.
-
- "As for you, Alan, it was no more than your bounden duty," she
- said. "But for this lad that has come here and seen us at our
- worst, and seen the goodman fleeching like a suitor, him that by
- rights should give his commands like any king -- as for you, my
- lad," she says, "my heart is wae not to have your name, but I
- have your face; and as long as my heart beats under my bosom, I
- will keep it, and think of it, and bless it." And with that she
- kissed me, and burst once more into such sobbing, that I stood
- abashed.
-
- "Hoot, hoot," said Alan, looking mighty silly. "The day comes
- unco soon in this month of July; and to-morrow there'll be a fine
- to-do in Appin, a fine riding of dragoons, and crying of
- 'Cruachan!'[24] and running of red-coats; and it behoves you and
- me to the sooner be gone."
-
- [24] The rallying-word of the Campbells.
-
-
- Thereupon we said farewell, and set out again, bending somewhat
- eastwards, in a fine mild dark night, and over much the same
- broken country as before.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE ROCKS
-
- Sometimes we walked, sometimes ran; and as it drew on to morning,
- walked ever the less and ran the more. Though, upon its face,
- that country appeared to be a desert, yet there were huts and
- houses of the people, of which we must have passed more than
- twenty, hidden in quiet places of the hills. When we came to one
- of these, Alan would leave me in the way, and go himself and rap
- upon the side of the house and speak awhile at the window with
- some sleeper awakened. This was to pass the news; which, in that
- country, was so much of a duty that Alan must pause to attend to
- it even while fleeing for his life; and so well attended to by
- others, that in more than half of the houses where we called they
- had heard already of the murder. In the others, as well as I
- could make out (standing back at a distance and hearing a strange
- tongue), the news was received with more of consternation than
- surprise.
-
- For all our hurry, day began to come in while we were still far
- from any shelter. It found us in a prodigious valley, strewn
- with rocks and where ran a foaming river. Wild mountains stood
- around it; there grew there neither grass nor trees; and I have
- sometimes thought since then, that it may have been the valley
- called Glencoe, where the massacre was in the time of King
- William. But for the details of our itinerary, I am all to seek;
- our way lying now by short cuts, now by great detours; our pace
- being so hurried, our time of journeying usually by night; and
- the names of such places as I asked and heard being in the Gaelic
- tongue and the more easily forgotten.
-
- The first peep of morning, then, showed us this horrible place,
- and I could see Alan knit his brow.
-
- "This is no fit place for you and me," he said. "This is a place
- they're bound to watch."
-
- And with that he ran harder than ever down to the water-side, in
- a part where the river was split in two among three rocks. It
- went through with a horrid thundering that made my belly quake;
- and there hung over the lynn a little mist of spray. Alan looked
- neither to the right nor to the left, but jumped clean upon the
- middle rock and fell there on his hands and knees to check
- himself, for that rock was small and he might have pitched over
- on the far side. I had scarce time to measure the distance or to
- understand the peril before I had followed him, and he had caught
- and stopped me.
-
- So there we stood, side by side upon a small rock slippery with
- spray, a far broader leap in front of us, and the river dinning
- upon all sides. When I saw where I was, there came on me a deadly
- sickness of fear, and I put my hand over my eyes. Alan took me
- and shook me; I saw he was speaking, but the roaring of the falls
- and the trouble of my mind prevented me from hearing; only I saw
- his face was red with anger, and that he stamped upon the rock.
- The same look showed me the water raging by, and the mist hanging
- in the air: and with that I covered my eyes again and shuddered.
-
- The next minute Alan had set the brandy bottle to my lips, and
- forced me to drink about a gill, which sent the blood into my
- head again. Then, putting his hands to his mouth, and his mouth
- to my ear, he shouted, "Hang or drown!" and turning his back upon
- me, leaped over the farther branch of the stream, and landed
- safe.
-
- I was now alone upon the rock, which gave me the more room; the
- brandy was singing in my ears; I had this good example fresh
- before me, and just wit enough to see that if I did not leap at
- once, I should never leap at all. I bent low on my knees and
- flung myself forth, with that kind of anger of despair that has
- sometimes stood me in stead of courage. Sure enough, it was but
- my hands that reached the full length; these slipped, caught
- again, slipped again; and I was sliddering back into the lynn,
- when Alan seized me, first by the hair, then by the collar, and
- with a great strain dragged me into safety.
-
- Never a word he said, but set off running again for his life, and
- I must stagger to my feet and run after him. I had been weary
- before, but now I was sick and bruised, and partly drunken with
- the brandy; I kept stumbling as I ran, I had a stitch that came
- near to overmaster me; and when at last Alan paused under a great
- rock that stood there among a number of others, it was none too
- soon for David Balfour.
-
- A great rock I have said; but by rights it was two rocks leaning
- together at the top, both some twenty feet high, and at the first
- sight inaccessible. Even Alan (though you may say he had as good
- as four hands) failed twice in an attempt to climb them; and it
- was only at the third trial, and then by standing on my shoulders
- and leaping up with such force as I thought must have broken my
- collar-bone, that he secured a lodgment. Once there, he let down
- his leathern girdle; and with the aid of that and a pair of
- shallow footholds in the rock, I scrambled up beside him.
-
- Then I saw why we had come there; for the two rocks, being both
- somewhat hollow on the top and sloping one to the other, made a
- kind of dish or saucer, where as many as three or four men might
- have lain hidden.
-
- All this while Alan had not said a word, and had run and climbed
- with such a savage, silent frenzy of hurry, that I knew that he
- was in mortal fear of some miscarriage. Even now we were on the
- rock he said nothing, nor so much as relaxed the frowning look
- upon his face; but clapped flat down, and keeping only one eye
- above the edge of our place of shelter scouted all round the
- compass. The dawn had come quite, clear; we could see the stony
- sides of the valley, and its bottom, which was bestrewed with
- rocks, and the river, which went from one side to another, and
- made white falls; but nowhere the smoke of a house, nor any
- living creature but some eagles screaming round a cliff.
-
- Then at last Alan smiled.
-
- "Ay" said he, "now we have a chance;" and then looking at me with
- some amusement. "Ye're no very gleg[25] at the jumping," said he.
-
- [25]Brisk.
-
-
- At this I suppose I coloured with mortification, for he added at
- once, "Hoots! small blame to ye! To be feared of a thing and yet
- to do it, is what makes the prettiest kind of a man. And then
- there was water there, and water's a thing that dauntons even me.
- No, no," said Alan, "it's no you that's to blame, it's me."
-
- I asked him why.
-
- "Why," said he, "I have proved myself a gomeral this night. For
- first of all I take a wrong road, and that in my own country of
- Appin; so that the day has caught us where we should never have
- been; and thanks to that, we lie here in some danger and mair
- discomfort. And next (which is the worst of the two, for a man
- that has been so much among the heather as myself) I have come
- wanting a water-bottle, and here we lie for a long summer's day
- with naething but neat spirit. Ye may think that a small matter;
- but before it comes night, David, ye'll give me news of it."
-
- I was anxious to redeem my character, and offered, if he would
- pour out the brandy, to run down and fill the bottle at the
- river.
-
- "I wouldnae waste the good spirit either," says he. "It's been a
- good friend to you this night; or in my poor opinion, ye would
- still be cocking on yon stone. And what's mair," says he, "ye
- may have observed (you that's a man of so much penetration) that
- Alan Breck Stewart was perhaps walking quicker than his
- ordinar'."
-
- "You!" I cried, "you were running fit to burst."
-
- "Was I so?" said he. "Well, then, ye may depend upon it, there
- was nae time to be lost. And now here is enough said; gang you
- to your sleep, lad, and I'll watch."
-
- Accordingly, I lay down to sleep; a little peaty earth had
- drifted in between the top of the two rocks, and some bracken
- grew there, to be a bed to me; the last thing I heard was still
- the crying of the eagles.
-
- I dare say it would be nine in the morning when I was roughly
- awakened, and found Alan's hand pressed upon my mouth.
-
- "Wheesht!" he whispered. "Ye were snoring."
-
- "Well," said I, surprised at his anxious and dark face, "and why
- not?"
-
- He peered over the edge of the rock, and signed to me to do the
- like.
-
- It was now high day, cloudless, and very hot. The valley was as
- clear as in a picture. About half a mile up the water was a camp
- of red-coats; a big fire blazed in their midst, at which some
- were cooking; and near by, on the top of a rock about as high as
- ours, there stood a sentry, with the sun sparkling on his arms.
- All the way down along the river-side were posted other sentries;
- here near together, there widelier scattered; some planted like
- the first, on places of command, some on the ground level and
- marching and counter-marching, so as to meet half-way. Higher up
- the glen, where the ground was more open, the chain of posts was
- continued by horse-soldiers, whom we could see in the distance
- riding to and fro. Lower down, the infantry continued; but as
- the stream was suddenly swelled by the confluence of a
- considerable burn, they were more widely set, and only watched
- the fords and stepping-stones.
-
- I took but one look at them, and ducked again into my place. It
- was strange indeed to see this valley, which had lain so solitary
- in the hour of dawn, bristling with arms and dotted with the red
- coats and breeches.
-
- "Ye see," said Alan, "this was what I was afraid of, Davie: that
- they would watch the burn-side. They began to come in about two
- hours ago, and, man! but ye're a grand hand at the sleeping!
- We're in a narrow place. If they get up the sides of the hill,
- they could easy spy us with a glass; but if they'll only keep in
- the foot of the valley, we'll do yet. The posts are thinner down
- the water; and, come night, we'll try our hand at getting by
- them."
-
- "And what are we to do till night?" I asked.
-
- "Lie here," says he, "and birstle."
-
- That one good Scotch word, "birstle," was indeed the most of the
- story of the day that we had now to pass. You are to remember
- that we lay on the bare top of a rock, like scones upon a girdle;
- the sun beat upon us cruelly; the rock grew so heated, a man
- could scarce endure the touch of it; and the little patch of
- earth and fern, which kept cooler, was only large enough for one
- at a time. We took turn about to lie on the naked rock, which
- was indeed like the position of that saint that was martyred on a
- gridiron; and it ran in my mind how strange it was, that in the
- same climate and at only a few days' distance, I should have
- suffered so cruelly, first from cold upon my island and now from
- heat upon this rock.
-
- All the while we had no water, only raw brandy for a drink, which
- was worse than nothing; but we kept the bottle as cool as we
- could, burying it in the earth, and got some relief by bathing
- our breasts and temples.
-
- The soldiers kept stirring all day in the bottom of the valley,
- now changing guard, now in patrolling parties hunting among the
- rocks. These lay round in so great a number, that to look for
- men among them was like looking for a needle in a bottle of hay;
- and being so hopeless a task, it was gone about with the less
- care. Yet we could see the soldiers pike their bayonets among
- the heather, which sent a cold thrill into my vitals; and they
- would sometimes hang about our rock, so that we scarce dared to
- breathe.
-
- It was in this way that I first heard the right English speech;
- one fellow as he went by actually clapping his hand upon the
- sunny face of the rock on which we lay, and plucking it off again
- with an oath. "I tell you it's 'ot," says he; and I was amazed at
- the clipping tones and the odd sing-song in which he spoke, and
- no less at that strange trick of dropping out the letter "h." To
- be sure, I had heard Ransome; but he had taken his ways from all
- sorts of people, and spoke so imperfectly at the best, that I set
- down the most of it to childishness. My surprise was all the
- greater to hear that manner of speaking in the mouth of a grown
- man; and indeed I have never grown used to it; nor yet altogether
- with the English grammar, as perhaps a very critical eye might
- here and there spy out even in these memoirs.
-
- The tediousness and pain of these hours upon the rock grew only
- the greater as the day went on; the rock getting still the hotter
- and the sun fiercer. There were giddiness, and sickness, and
- sharp pangs like rheumatism, to be supported. I minded then, and
- have often minded since, on the lines in our Scotch psalm: --
-
- "The moon by night thee shall not smite,
- Nor yet the sun by day;"
-
- and indeed it was only by God's blessing that we were neither of
- us sun-smitten.
-
- At last, about two, it was beyond men's bearing, and there was
- now temptation to resist, as well as pain to thole. For the sun
- being now got a little into the west, there came a patch of shade
- on the east side of our rock, which was the side sheltered from
- the soldiers.
-
- "As well one death as another," said Alan, and slipped over the
- edge and dropped on the ground on the shadowy side.
-
- I followed him at once, and instantly fell all my length, so weak
- was I and so giddy with that long exposure. Here, then, we lay
- for an hour or two, aching from head to foot, as weak as water,
- and lying quite naked to the eye of any soldier who should have
- strolled that way. None came, however, all passing by on the
- other side; so that our rock continued to be our shield even in
- this new position.
-
- Presently we began again to get a little strength; and as the
- soldiers were now lying closer along the river-side, Alan
- proposed that we should try a start. I was by this time afraid
- of but one thing in the world; and that was to be set back upon
- the rock; anything else was welcome to me; so we got ourselves at
- once in marching order, and began to slip from rock to rock one
- after the other, now crawling flat on our bellies in the shade,
- now making a run for it, heart in mouth.
-
- The soldiers, having searched this side of the valley after a
- fashion, and being perhaps somewhat sleepy with the sultriness of
- the afternoon, had now laid by much of their vigilance, and stood
- dozing at their posts or only kept a look-out along the banks of
- the river; so that in this way, keeping down the valley and at
- the same time towards the mountains, we drew steadily away from
- their neighbourhood. But the business was the most wearing I had
- ever taken part in. A man had need of a hundred eyes in every
- part of him, to keep concealed in that uneven country and within
- cry of so many and scattered sentries. When we must pass an open
- place, quickness was not all, but a swift judgment not only of
- the lie of the whole country, but of the solidity of every stone
- on which we must set foot; for the afternoon was now fallen so
- breathless that the rolling of a pebble sounded abroad like a
- pistol shot, and would start the echo calling among the hills and
- cliffs.
-
- By sundown we had made some distance, even by our slow rate of
- progress, though to be sure the sentry on the rock was still
- plainly in our view. But now we came on something that put all
- fears out of season; and that was a deep rushing burn, that tore
- down, in that part, to join the glen river. At the sight of this
- we cast ourselves on the ground and plunged head and shoulders in
- the water; and I cannot tell which was the more pleasant, the
- great shock as the cool stream went over us, or the greed with
- which we drank of it.
-
- We lay there (for the banks hid us), drank again and again,
- bathed our chests, let our wrists trail in the running water till
- they ached with the chill; and at last, being wonderfullv
- renewed, we got out the meal-bag and made drammach in the iron
- pan. This, though it is but cold water mingled with oatmeal, yet
- makes a good enough dish for a hungry man; and where there are no
- means of making fire, or (as in our case) good reason for not
- making one, it is the chief stand-by of those who have taken to
- the heather.
-
- As soon as the shadow of the night had fallen, we set forth
- again, at first with the same caution, but presently with more
- boldness, standing our full height and stepping out at a good
- pace of walking. The way was very intricate, lying up the steep
- sides of mountains and along the brows of cliffs; clouds had come
- in with the sunset, and the night was dark and cool; so that I
- walked without much fatigue, but in continual fear of falling and
- rolling down the mountains, and with no guess at our direction.
-
- The moon rose at last and found us still on the road; it was in
- its last quarter, and was long beset with clouds; but after
- awhile shone out and showed me many dark heads of mountains, and
- was reflected far underneath us on the narrow arm of a sea-loch.
-
- At this sight we both paused: I struck with wonder to find myself
- so high and walking (as it seemed to me) upon clouds; Alan to
- make sure of his direction.
-
- Seemingly he was well pleased, and he must certainly have judged
- us out of ear-shot of all our enemies; for throughout the rest of
- our night-march he beguiled the way with whistling of many tunes,
- warlike, merry, plaintive; reel tunes that made the foot go
- faster; tunes of my own south country that made me fain to be
- home from my adventures; and all these, on the great, dark,
- desert mountains, making company upon the way.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI
-
- THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE HEUGH OF CORRYNAKIEGH
-
- Early as day comes in the beginning of July, it was still dark
- when we reached our destination, a cleft in the head of a great
- mountain, with a water running through the midst, and upon the
- one hand a shallow cave in a rock. Birches grew there in a thin,
- pretty wood, which a little farther on was changed into a wood of
- pines. The burn was full of trout; the wood of cushat-doves; on
- the open side of the mountain beyond, whaups would be always
- whistling, and cuckoos were plentiful. From the mouth of the
- cleft we looked down upon a part of Mamore, and on the sea-loch
- that divides that country from Appin; and this from so great a
- height as made it my continual wonder and pleasure to sit and
- behold them.
-
- The name of the cleft was the Heugh of Corrynakiegh; and although
- from its height and being so near upon the sea, it was often
- beset with clouds, yet it was on the whole a pleasant place, and
- the five days we lived in it went happily.
-
- We slept in the cave, making our bed of heather bushes which we
- cut for that purpose, and covering ourselves with Alan's
- great-coat. There was a low concealed place, in a turning of the
- glen, where we were so bold as to make fire: so that we could
- warm ourselves when the clouds set in, and cook hot porridge, and
- grill the little trouts that we caught with our hands under the
- stones and overhanging banks of the burn. This was indeed our
- chief pleasure and business; and not only to save our meal
- against worse times, but with a rivalry that much amused us, we
- spent a great part of our days at the water-side, stripped to the
- waist and groping about or (as they say) guddling for these fish.
- The largest we got might have been a quarter of a pound; but they
- were of good flesh and flavour, and when broiled upon the coals,
- lacked only a little salt to be delicious.
-
- In any by-time Alan must teach me to use my sword, for my
- ignorance had much distressed him; and I think besides, as I had
- sometimes the upper-hand of him in the fishing, he was not sorry
- to turn to an exercise where he had so much the upper-hand of me.
- He made it somewhat more of a pain than need have been, for he
- stormed at me all through the lessons in a very violent manner of
- scolding, and would push me so close that I made sure he must run
- me through the body. I was often tempted to turn tail, but held
- my ground for all that, and got some profit of my lessons; if it
- was but to stand on guard with an assured countenance, which is
- often all that is required. So, though I could never in the
- least please my master, I was not altogether displeased with
- myself.
-
- In the meanwhile, you are not to suppose that we neglected our
- chief business, which was to get away.
-
- "It will be many a long day," Alan said to me on our first
- morning, "before the red-coats think upon seeking Corrynakiegh;
- so now we must get word sent to James, and he must find the
- siller for us."
-
- "And how shall we send that word?" says I. "We are here in a
- desert place, which yet we dare not leave; and unless ye get the
- fowls of the air to be your messengers, I see not what we shall
- be able to do."
-
- "Ay?" said Alan. "Ye're a man of small contrivance, David."
-
- Thereupon he fell in a muse, looking in the embers of the fire;
- and presently, getting a piece of wood, he fashioned it in a
- cross, the four ends of which he blackened on the coals. Then he
- looked at me a little shyly.
-
- "Could ye lend me my button?" says he. "It seems a strange thing
- to ask a gift again, but I own I am laith to cut another."
-
- I gave him the button; whereupon he strung it on a strip of his
- great-coat which he had used to bind the cross; and tying in a
- little sprig of birch and another of fir, he looked upon his work
- with satisfaction.
-
- "Now," said he, "there is a little clachan" (what is called a
- hamlet in the English) "not very far from Corrynakiegh, and it
- has the name of Koalisnacoan. There there are living many
- friends of mine whom I could trust with my life, and some that I
- am no just so sure of. Ye see, David, there will be money set
- upon our heads; James himsel' is to set money on them; and as for
- the Campbells, they would never spare siller where there was a
- Stewart to be hurt. If it was otherwise, I would go down to
- Koalisnacoan whatever, and trust my life into these people's
- hands as lightly as I would trust another with my glove."
-
- "But being so?" said I.
-
- "Being so," said he, "I would as lief they didnae see me.
- There's bad folk everywhere, and what's far worse, weak ones. So
- when it comes dark again, I will steal down into that clachan,
- and set this that I have been making in the window of a good
- friend of mine, John Breck Maccoll, a bouman[26] of Appin's."
-
- [26]A bouman is a tenant who takes stock from the landlord and
- shares with him the increase.
-
-
- "With all my heart," says I; "and if he finds it, what is he to
- think?"
-
- "Well," says Alan, "I wish he was a man of more penetration, for
- by my troth I am afraid he will make little enough of it! But
- this is what I have in my mind. This cross is something in the
- nature of the crosstarrie, or fiery cross, which is the signal of
- gathering in our clans; yet he will know well enough the clan is
- not to rise, for there it is standing in his window, and no word
- with it. So he will say to himsel', THE CLAN IS NOT TO RISE, BUT
- THERE IS SOMETHING. Then he will see my button, and that was
- Duncan Stewart's. And then he will say to himsel', THE SON OF
- DUNCAN IS IN THE HEATHER, AND HAS NEED OF ME."
-
- "Well," said I, "it may be. But even supposing so, there is a
- good deal of heather between here and the Forth."
-
- "And that is a very true word," says Alan. "But then John Breck
- will see the sprig of birch and the sprig of pine; and he will
- say to himsel' (if he is a man of any penetration at all, which I
- misdoubt), ALAN WILL BE LYING IN A WOOD WHICH IS BOTH OF PINES
- AND BIRCHES. Then he will think to himsel', THAT IS NOT SO VERY
- RIFE HEREABOUT; and then he will come and give us a look up in
- Corrynakiegh. And if he does not, David, the devil may fly away
- with him, for what I care; for he will no be worth the salt to
- his porridge."
-
- "Eh, man," said I, drolling with him a little, "you're very
- ingenious! But would it not be simpler for you to write him a few
- words in black and white?"
-
- "And that is an excellent observe, Mr. Balfour of Shaws," says
- Alan, drolling with me; "and it would certainly be much simpler
- for me to write to him, but it would be a sore job for John Breck
- to read it. He would have to go to the school for two-three
- years; and it's possible we might be wearied waiting on him."
-
- So that night Alan carried down his fiery cross and set it in the
- bouman's window. He was troubled when he came back; for the dogs
- had barked and the folk run out from their houses; and he thought
- he had heard a clatter of arms and seen a red-coat come to one of
- the doors. On all accounts we lay the next day in the borders of
- the wood and kept a close look-out, so that if it was John Breck
- that came we might be ready to guide him, and if it was the
- red-coats we should have time to get away.
-
- About noon a man was to be spied, straggling up the open side of
- the mountain in the sun, and looking round him as he came, from
- under his hand. No sooner had Alan seen him than he whistled;
- the man turned and came a little towards us: then Alan would give
- another "peep!" and the man would come still nearer; and so by
- the sound of whistling, he was guided to the spot where we lay.
-
- He was a ragged, wild, bearded man, about forty, grossly
- disfigured with the small pox, and looked both dull and savage.
- Although his English was very bad and broken, yet Alan (according
- to his very handsome use, whenever I was by) would suffer him to
- speak no Gaelic. Perhaps the strange language made him appear
- more backward than he really was; but I thought he had little
- good-will to serve us, and what he had was the child of terror.
-
- Alan would have had him carry a message to James; but the bouman
- would hear of no message. "She was forget it," he said in his
- screaming voice; and would either have a letter or wash his hands
- of us.
-
- I thought Alan would be gravelled at that, for we lacked the
- means of writing in that desert.
-
- But he was a man of more resources than I knew; searched the wood
- until he found the quill of a cushat-dove, which he shaped into a
- pen; made himself a kind of ink with gunpowder from his horn and
- water from the running stream; and tearing a corner from his
- French military commission (which he carried in his pocket, like
- a talisman to keep him from the gallows), he sat down and wrote
- as follows:
-
-
- "DEAR KINSMAN, -- Please send the money by the bearer to the
- place he kens of.
- "Your affectionate cousin,
- "A. S."
-
-
- This he intrusted to the bouman, who promised to make what manner
- of speed he best could, and carried it off with him down the
- hill.
-
- He was three full days gone, but about five in the evening of the
- third, we heard a whistling in the wood, which Alan answered; and
- presently the bouman came up the water-side, looking for us,
- right and left. He seemed less sulky than before, and indeed he
- was no doubt well pleased to have got to the end of such a
- dangerous commission.
-
- He gave us the news of the country; that it was alive with
- red-coats; that arms were being found, and poor folk brought in
- trouble daily; and that James and some of his servants were
- already clapped in prison at Fort William, under strong suspicion
- of complicity. It seemed it was noised on all sides that Alan
- Breck had fired the shot; and there was a bill issued for both
- him and me, with one hundred pounds reward.
-
- This was all as bad as could be; and the little note the bouman
- had carried us from Mrs. Stewart was of a miserable sadness. In
- it she besought Alan not to let himself be captured, assuring
- him, if he fell in the hands of the troops, both he and James
- were no better than dead men. The money she had sent was all
- that she could beg or borrow, and she prayed heaven we could be
- doing with it. Lastly, she said, she enclosed us one of the
- bills in which we were described.
-
- This we looked upon with great curiosity and not a little fear,
- partly as a man may look in a mirror, partly as he might look
- into the barrel of an enemy's gun to judge if it be truly aimed.
- Alan was advertised as "a small, pock-marked, active man of
- thirty-five or thereby, dressed in a feathered hat, a French
- side-coat of blue with silver buttons, and lace a great deal
- tarnished, a red waistcoat and breeches of black, shag;" and I as
- "a tall strong lad of about eighteen, wearing an old blue coat,
- very ragged, an old Highland bonnet, a long homespun waistcoat,
- blue breeches; his legs bare, low-country shoes, wanting the
- toes; speaks like a Lowlander, and has no beard."
-
- Alan was well enough pleased to see his finery so fully
- remembered and set down; only when he came to the word tarnish,
- he looked upon his lace like one a little mortified. As for
- myself, I thought I cut a miserable figure in the bill; and yet
- was well enough pleased too, for since I had changed these rags,
- the description had ceased to be a danger and become a source of
- safety.
-
- "Alan," said I, "you should change your clothes."
-
- "Na, troth!" said Alan, "I have nae others. A fine sight I would
- be, if I went back to France in a bonnet!"
-
- This put a second reflection in my mind: that if I were to
- separate from Alan and his tell-tale clothes I should be safe
- against arrest, and might go openly about my business. Nor was
- this all; for suppose I was arrested when I was alone, there was
- little against me; but suppose I was taken in company with the
- reputed murderer, my case would begin to be grave. For
- generosity's sake I dare not speak my mind upon this head; but I
- thought of it none the less.
-
- I thought of it all the more, too, when the bouman brought out a
- green purse with four guineas in gold, and the best part of
- another in small change. True, it was more than I had. But then
- Alan, with less than five guineas, had to get as far as France;
- I, with my less than two, not beyond Queensferry; so that taking
- things in their proportion, Alan's society was not only a peril
- to my life, but a burden on my purse.
-
- But there was no thought of the sort in the honest head of my
- companion. He believed he was serving, helping, and protecting
- me. And what could I do but hold my peace, and chafe, and take
- my chance of it?
-
- "It's little enough," said Alan, putting the purse in his pocket,
- "but it'll do my business. And now, John Breck, if ye will hand
- me over my button, this gentleman and me will be for taking the
- road."
-
- But the bouman, after feeling about in a hairy purse that hung in
- front of him in the Highland manner (though he wore otherwise the
- Lowland habit, with sea-trousers), began to roll his eyes
- strangely, and at last said, "Her nainsel will loss it," meaning
- he thought he had lost it.
-
- "What!" cried Alan, "you will lose my button, that was my
- father's before me? Now I will tell you what is in my mind, John
- Breck: it is in my mind this is the worst day's work that ever ye
- did since ye was born."
-
- And as Alan spoke, he set his hands on his knees and looked at
- the bouman with a smiling mouth, and that dancing light in his
- eyes that meant mischief to his enemies.
-
- Perhaps the bouman was honest enough; perhaps he had meant to
- cheat and then, finding himself alone with two of us in a desert
- place, cast back to honesty as being safer; at least, and all at
- once, he seemed to find that button and handed it to Alan.
-
- "Well, and it is a good thing for the honour of the Maccolls,"
- said Alan, and then to me, "Here is my button back again, and I
- thank you for parting with it, which is of a piece with all your
- friendships to me." Then he took the warmest parting of the
- bouman. "For," says he, "ye have done very well by me, and set
- your neck at a venture, and I will always give you the name of a
- good man."
-
- Lastly, the bouman took himself off by one way; and Alan I
- (getting our chattels together) struck into another to resume our
- flight.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII
-
- THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE MOOR
-
- Some seven hours' incessant, hard travelling brought us early in
- the morning to the end of a range of mountains. In front of us
- there lay a piece of low, broken, desert land, which we must now
- cross. The sun was not long up, and shone straight in our eyes;
- a little, thin mist went up from the face of the moorland like a
- smoke; so that (as Alan said) there might have been twenty
- squadron of dragoons there and we none the wiser.
-
- We sat down, therefore, in a howe of the hill-side till the mist
- should have risen, and made ourselves a dish of drammach, and
- held a council of war.
-
- "David," said Alan, "this is the kittle bit. Shall we lie here
- till it comes night, or shall we risk it, and stave on ahead?"
-
- "Well," said I, "I am tired indeed, but I could walk as far
- again, if that was all."
-
- "Ay, but it isnae," said Alan, "nor yet the half. This is how we
- stand: Appin's fair death to us. To the south it's all
- Campbells, and no to be thought of. To the north; well, there's
- no muckle to be gained by going north; neither for you, that
- wants to get to Queensferry, nor yet for me, that wants to get to
- France. Well, then, we'll can strike east."
-
- "East be it!" says I, quite cheerily; but I was thinking" in to
- myself: "O, man, if you would only take one point of the compass
- and let me take any other, it would be the best for both of us."
-
- "Well, then, east, ye see, we have the muirs," said Alan. "Once
- there, David, it's mere pitch-and-toss. Out on yon bald, naked,
- flat place, where can a body turn to? Let the red-coats come over
- a hill, they can spy you miles away; and the sorrow's in their
- horses' heels, they would soon ride you down. It's no good
- place, David; and I'm free to say, it's worse by daylight than by
- dark."
-
- "Alan," said I, "hear my way of it. Appin's death for us; we
- have none too much money, nor yet meal; the longer they seek, the
- nearer they may guess where we are; it's all a risk; and I give
- my word to go ahead until we drop."
-
- Alan was delighted. "There are whiles," said he, "when ye are
- altogether too canny and Whiggish to be company for a gentleman
- like me; but there come other whiles when ye show yoursel' a
- mettle spark; and it's then, David, that I love ye like a
- brother."
-
- The mist rose and died away, and showed us that country lying as
- waste as the sea; only the moorfowl and the pewees crying upon
- it, and far over to the east, a herd of deer, moving like dots.
- Much of it was red with heather; much of the rest broken up with
- bogs and hags and peaty pools; some had been burnt black in a
- heath fire; and in another place there was quite a forest of dead
- firs, standing like skeletons. A wearier-looking desert man
- never saw; but at least it was clear of troops, which was our
- point.
-
- We went down accordingly into the waste, and began to make our
- toilsome and devious travel towards the eastern verge. There
- were the tops of mountains all round (you are to remember) from
- whence we might be spied at any moment; so it behoved us to keep
- in the hollow parts of the moor, and when these turned aside from
- our direction to move upon its naked face with infinite care.
- Sometimes, for half an hour together, we must crawl from one
- heather bush to another, as hunters do when they are hard upon
- the deer. It was a clear day again, with a blazing sun; the
- water in the brandy bottle was soon gone; and altogether, if I
- had guessed what it would be to crawl half the time upon my belly
- and to walk much of the rest stooping nearly to the knees, I
- should certainly have held back from such a killing enterprise.
-
- Toiling and resting and toiling again, we wore away the morning;
- and about noon lay down in a thick bush of heather to sleep.
- Alan took the first watch; and it seemed to me I had scarce
- closed my eyes before I was shaken up to take the second. We had
- no clock to go by; and Alan stuck a sprig of heath in the ground
- to serve instead; so that as soon as the shadow of the bush
- should fall so far to the east, I might know to rouse him. But I
- was by this time so weary that I could have slept twelve hours at
- a stretch; I had the taste of sleep in my throat; my joints slept
- even when my mind was waking; the hot smell of the heather, and
- the drone of the wild bees, were like possets to me; and every
- now and again I would give a jump and find I had been dozing.
-
- The last time I woke I seemed to come back from farther away, and
- thought the sun had taken a great start in the heavens. I looked
- at the sprig of heath, and at that I could have cried aloud: for
- I saw I had betrayed my trust. My head was nearly turned with
- fear and shame; and at what I saw, when I looked out around me on
- the moor, my heart was like dying in my body. For sure enough, a
- body of horse-soldiers had come down during my sleep, and were
- drawing near to us from the south-east, spread out in the shape
- of a fan and riding their horses to and fro in the deep parts of
- the heather.
-
- When I waked Alan, he glanced first at the soldiers, then at the
- mark and the position of the sun, and knitted his brows with a
- sudden, quick look, both ugly and anxious, which was all the
- reproach I had of him.
-
- "What are we to do now?" I asked.
-
- "We'll have to play at being hares," said he. "Do ye see yon
- mountain?" pointing to one on the north-eastern sky.
-
- "Ay," said I.
-
- "Well, then," says he, "let us strike for that. Its name is Ben
- Alder. it is a wild, desert mountain full of hills and hollows,
- and if we can win to it before the morn, we may do yet."
-
- "But, Alan," cried I, "that will take us across the very coming
- of the soldiers!"
-
- "I ken that fine," said he; "but if we are driven back on Appin,
- we are two dead men. So now, David man, be brisk!"
-
- With that he began to run forward on his hands and knees with an
- incredible quickness, as though it were his natural way of going.
- All the time, too, he kept winding in and out in the lower parts
- of the moorland where we were the best concealed. Some of these
- had been burned or at least scathed with fire; and there rose in
- our faces (which were close to the ground) a blinding, choking
- dust as fine as smoke. The water was long out; and this posture
- of running on the hands and knees brings an overmastering
- weakness and weariness, so that the joints ache and the wrists
- faint under your weight.
-
- Now and then, indeed, where was a big bush of heather, we lay
- awhile, and panted, and putting aside the leaves, looked back at
- the dragoons. They had not spied us, for they held straight on;
- a half-troop, I think, covering about two miles of ground, and
- beating it mighty thoroughly as they went. I had awakened just
- in time; a little later, and we must have fled in front of them,
- instead of escaping on one side. Even as it was, the least
- misfortune might betray us; and now and again, when a grouse rose
- out of the heather with a clap of wings, we lay as still as the
- dead and were afraid to breathe.
-
- The aching and faintness of my body, the labouring of my heart,
- the soreness of my hands, and the smarting of my throat and eyes
- in the continual smoke of dust and ashes, had soon grown to be so
- unbearable that I would gladly have given up. Nothing but the
- fear of Alan lent me enough of a false kind of courage to
- continue. As for himself (and you are to bear in mind that he
- was cumbered with a great-coat) he had first turned crimson, but
- as time went on the redness began to be mingled with patches of
- white; his breath cried and whistled as it came; and his voice,
- when he whispered his observations in my ear during our halts,
- sounded like nothing human. Yet he seemed in no way dashed in
- spirits, nor did he at all abate in his activity, so that I was
- driven, to marvel at the man's endurance.
-
- At length, in the first gloaming of the night, we heard a trumpet
- sound, and looking back from among the heather, saw the troop
- beginning to collect. A little after, they had built a fire and
- camped for the night, about the middle of the waste.
-
- At this I begged and besought that we might lie down and sleep.
-
- "There shall be no sleep the night!" said Alan. "From now on,
- these weary dragoons of yours will keep the crown of the
- muirland, and none will get out of Appin but winged fowls. We
- got through in the nick of time, and shall we jeopard what we've
- gained? Na, na, when the day comes, it shall find you and me in
- a fast place on Ben Alder."
-
- "Alan," I said, "it's not the want of will: it's the strength
- that I want. If I could, I would; but as sure as I'm alive I
- cannot."
-
- "Very well, then," said Alan. "I'll carry ye."
-
- I looked to see if he were jesting; but no, the little man was in
- dead earnest; and the sight of so much resolution shamed me.
-
- "Lead away!" said I. "I'll follow."
-
- He gave me one look as much as to say, "Well done, David!" and
- off he set again at his top speed.
-
- It grew cooler and even a little darker (but not much) with the
- coming of the night. The sky was cloudless; it was still early
- in July, and pretty far north; in the darkest part of that night,
- you would have needed pretty good eyes to read, but for all that,
- I have often seen it darker in a winter mid-day. Heavy dew fell
- and drenched the moor like rain; and this refreshed me for a
- while. When we stopped to breathe, and I had time to see all
- about me, the clearness and sweetness of the night, the shapes of
- the hills like things asleep, and the fire dwindling away behind
- us, like a bright spot in the midst of the moor, anger would come
- upon me in a clap that I must still drag myself in agony and eat
- the dust like a worm.
-
- By what I have read in books, I think few that have held a pen
- were ever really wearied, or they would write of it more
- strongly. I had no care of my life, neither past nor future, and
- I scarce remembered there was such a lad as David Balfour. I did
- not think of myself, but just of each fresh step which I was sure
- would be my last, with despair -- and of Alan, who was the cause
- of it, with hatred. Alan was in the right trade as a soldier;
- this is the officer's part to make men continue to do things,
- they know not wherefore, and when, if the choice was offered,
- they would lie down where they were and be killed. And I dare
- say I would have made a good enough private; for in these last
- hours it never occurred to me that I had any choice but just to
- obey as long as I was able, and die obeying.
-
- Day began to come in, after years, I thought; and by that time we
- were past the greatest danger, and could walk upon our feet like
- men, instead of crawling like brutes. But, dear heart have
- mercy! what a pair we must have made, going double like old
- grandfathers, stumbling like babes, and as white as dead folk.
- Never a word passed between us; each set his mouth and kept his
- eyes in front of him, and lifted up his foot and set it down
- again, like people lifting weights at a country play;[27] all the
- while, with the moorfowl crying "peep!" in the heather, and the
- light coming slowly clearer in the east.
-
- [27] Village fair.
-
-
- I say Alan did as I did. Not that ever I looked at him, for I
- had enough ado to keep my feet; but because it is plain he must
- have been as stupid with weariness as myself, and looked as
- little where we were going, or we should not have walked into an
- ambush like blind men.
-
- It fell in this way. We were going down a heathery brae, Alan
- leading and I following a pace or two behind, like a fiddler and
- his wife; when upon a sudden the heather gave a rustle, three or
- four ragged men leaped out, and the next moment we were lying on
- our backs, each with a dirk at his throat.
-
- I don't think I cared; the pain of this rough handling was quite
- swallowed up by the pains of which I was already full; and I was
- too glad to have stopped walking to mind about a dirk. I lay
- looking up in the face of the man that held me; and I mind his
- face was black with the sun, and his eyes very light, but I was
- not afraid of him. I heard Alan and another whispering in the
- Gaelic; and what they said was all one to me.
-
- Then the dirks were put up, our weapons were taken away, and we
- were set face to face, sitting in the heather.
-
- "They are Cluny's men," said Alan. "We couldnae have fallen
- better. We're just to bide here with these, which are his
- out-sentries, till they can get word to the chief of my arrival."
-
- Now Cluny Macpherson, the chief of the clan Vourich, had been one
- of the leaders of the great rebellion six years before; there was
- a price on his life; and I had supposed him long ago in France,
- with the rest of the heads of that desperate party. Even tired
- as I was, the surprise of what I heard half wakened me.
-
- "What," I cried, "is Cluny still here?"
-
- "Ay, is he so!" said Alan. "Still in his own country and kept by
- his own clan. King George can do no more."
-
- I think I would have asked farther, but Alan gave me the put-off.
- "I am rather wearied," he said, "and I would like fine to get a
- sleep." And without more words, he rolled on his face in a deep
- heather bush, and seemed to sleep at once.
-
- There was no such thing possible for me. You have heard
- grasshoppers whirring in the grass in the summer time? Well, I
- had no sooner closed my eyes, than my body, and above all my
- head, belly, and wrists, seemed to be filled with whirring
- grasshoppers; and I must open my eyes again at once, and tumble
- and toss, and sit up and lie down; and look at the sky which
- dazzled me, or at Cluny's wild and dirty sentries, peering out
- over the top of the brae and chattering to each other in the
- Gaelic.
-
- That was all the rest I had, until the messenger returned; when,
- as it appeared that Cluny would be glad to receive us, we must
- get once more upon our feet and set forward. Alan was in
- excellent good spirits, much refreshed by his sleep, very hungry,
- and looking pleasantly forward to a dram and a dish of hot
- collops, of which, it seems, the messenger had brought him word.
- For my part, it made me sick to hear of eating. I had been
- dead-heavy before, and now I felt a kind of dreadful lightness,
- which would not suffer me to walk. I drifted like a gossamer;
- the ground seemed to me a cloud, the hills a feather-weight, the
- air to have a current, like a running burn, which carried me to
- and fro. With all that, a sort of horror of despair sat on my
- mind, so that I could have wept at my own helplessness.
-
- I saw Alan knitting his brows at me, and supposed it was in
- anger; and that gave me a pang of light-headed fear, like what a
- child may have. I remember, too, that I was smiling, and could
- not stop smiling, hard as I tried; for I thought it was out of
- place at such a time. But my good companion had nothing in his
- mind but kindness; and the next moment, two of the gillies had me
- by the arms, and I began to be carried forward with great
- swiftness (or so it appeared to me, although I dare say it was
- slowly enough in truth), through a labyrinth of dreary glens and
- hollows and into the heart of that dismal mountain of Ben Alder.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII
-
- CLUNY'S CAGE
-
- We came at last to the foot of an exceeding steep wood, which
- scrambled up a craggy hillside, and was crowned by a naked
- precipice.
-
- "It's here," said one of the guides, and we struck up hill.
-
- The trees clung upon the slope, like sailors on the shrouds of a
- ship, and their trunks were like the rounds of a ladder, by which
- we mounted.
-
- Quite at the top, and just before the rocky face of the cliff
- sprang above the foliage, we found that strange house which was
- known in the country as "Cluny's Cage." The trunks of several
- trees had been wattled across, the intervals strengthened with
- stakes, and the ground behind this barricade levelled up with
- earth to make the floor. A tree, which grew out from the
- hillside, was the living centre-beam of the roof. The walls were
- of wattle and covered with moss. The whole house had something
- of an egg shape; and it half hung, half stood in that steep,
- hillside thicket, like a wasp's nest in a green hawthorn.
-
- Within, it was large enough to shelter five or six persons with
- some comfort. A projection of the cliff had been cunningly
- employed to be the fireplace; and the smoke rising against the
- face of the rock, and being not dissimilar in colour, readily
- escaped notice from below.
-
- This was but one of Cluny's hiding-places; he had caves, besides,
- and underground chambers in several parts of his country; and
- following the reports of his scouts, he moved from one to another
- as the soldiers drew near or moved away. By this manner of
- living, and thanks to the affection of his clan, he had not only
- stayed all this time in safety, while so many others had fled or
- been taken and slain: but stayed four or five years longer, and
- only went to France at last by the express command of his master.
- There he soon died; and it is strange to reflect that he may have
- regretted his Cage upon Ben Alder.
-
- When we came to the door he was seated by his rock chimney,
- watching a gillie about some cookery. He was mighty plainly
- habited, with a knitted nightcap drawn over his ears, and smoked
- a foul cutty pipe. For all that he had the manners of a king,
- and it was quite a sight to see him rise out of his place to
- welcome us.
-
- "Well, Mr. Stewart, come awa', sir!" said he, "and bring in your
- friend that as yet I dinna ken the name of."
-
- "And how is yourself, Cluny?" said Alan. "I hope ye do brawly,
- sir. And I am proud to see ye, and to present to ye my friend
- the Laird of Shaws, Mr. David Balfour."
-
- Alan never referred to my estate without a touch of a sneer, when
- we were alone; but with strangers, he rang the words out like a
- herald.
-
- "Step in by, the both of ye, gentlemen," says Cluny. "I make ye
- welcome to my house, which is a queer, rude place for certain,
- but one where I have entertained a royal personage, Mr. Stewart
- -- ye doubtless ken the personage I have in my eye. We'll take a
- dram for luck, and as soon as this handless man of mine has the
- collops ready, we'll dine and take a hand at the cartes as
- gentlemen should. My life is a bit driegh," says he, pouring out
- the brandy;" I see little company, and sit and twirl my thumbs,
- and mind upon a great day that is gone by, and weary for another
- great day that we all hope will be upon the road. And so here's
- a toast to ye: The Restoration!"
-
- Thereupon we all touched glasses and drank. I am sure I wished
- no ill to King George; and if he had been there himself in proper
- person, it's like he would have done as I did. No sooner had I
- taken out the drain than I felt hugely better, and could look on
- and listen, still a little mistily perhaps, but no longer with
- the same groundless horror and distress of mind.
-
- It was certainly a strange place, and we had a strange host. In
- his long hiding, Cluny had grown to have all manner of precise
- habits, like those of an old maid. He had a particular place,
- where no one else must sit; the Cage was arranged in a particular
- way, which none must disturb; cookery was one of his chief
- fancies, and even while he was greeting us in, he kept an eye to
- the collops.
-
- It appears, he sometimes visited or received visits from his wife
- and one or two of his nearest friends, under the cover of night;
- but for the more part lived quite alone, and communicated only
- with his sentinels and the gillies that waited on him in the
- Cage. The first thing in the morning, one of them, who was a
- barber, came and shaved him, and gave him the news of the
- country, of which he was immoderately greedy. There was no end
- to his questions; he put them as earnestly as a child; and at
- some of the answers, laughed out of all bounds of reason, and
- would break out again laughing at the mere memory, hours after
- the barber was gone.
-
- To be sure, there might have been a purpose in his questions; for
- though he was thus sequestered, and like the other landed
- gentlemen of Scotland, stripped by the late Act of Parliament of
- legal powers, he still exercised a patriarchal justice in his
- clan. Disputes were brought to him in his hiding-hole to be
- decided; and the men of his country, who would have snapped their
- fingers at the Court of Session, laid aside revenge and paid down
- money at the bare word of this forfeited and hunted outlaw. When
- he was angered, which was often enough, he gave his commands and
- breathed threats of punishment like any, king; and his gillies
- trembled and crouched away from him like children before a hasty
- father. With each of them, as he entered, he ceremoniously shook
- hands, both parties touching their bonnets at the same time in a
- military manner. Altogether, I had a fair chance to see some of
- the inner workings of a Highland clan; and this with a
- proscribed, fugitive chief; his country conquered; the troops
- riding upon all sides in quest of him, sometimes within a mile of
- where he lay; and when the least of the ragged fellows whom he
- rated and threatened, could have made a fortune by betraying him.
-
- On that first day, as soon as the collops were ready, Cluny gave
- them with his own hand a squeeze of a lemon (for he was well
- supplied with luxuries) and bade us draw in to our meal.
-
- "They," said he, meaning the collops, "are such as I gave his
- Royal Highness in this very house; bating the lemon juice, for at
- that time we were glad to get the meat and never fashed for
- kitchen.[28] Indeed, there were mair dragoons than lemons in my
- country in the year forty-six."
-
- [28]Condiment.
-
-
- I do not know if the collops were truly very good, but my heart
- rose against the sight of them, and I could eat but little. All
- the while Cluny entertained us with stories of Prince Charlie's
- stay in the Cage, giving us the very words of the speakers, and
- rising from his place to show us where they stood. By these, I
- gathered the Prince was a gracious, spirited boy, like the son of
- a race of polite kings, but not so wise as Solomon. I gathered,
- too, that while he was in the Cage, he was often drunk; so the
- fault that has since, by all accounts, made such a wreck of him,
- had even then begun to show itself.
-
- We were no sooner done eating than Cluny brought out an old,
- thumbed, greasy pack of cards, such as you may find in a mean
- inn; and his eyes brightened in his face as he proposed that we
- should fall to playing.
-
- Now this was one of the things I had been brought up to eschew
- like disgrace; it being held by my father neither the part of a
- Christian nor yet of a gentleman to set his own livelihood and
- fish for that of others, on the cast of painted pasteboard. To
- be sure, I might have pleaded my fatigue, which was excuse
- enough; but I thought it behoved that I should bear a testimony.
- I must have got very red in the face, but I spoke steadily, and
- told them I had no call to be a judge of others, but for my own
- part, it was a matter in which I had no clearness.
-
- Cluny stopped mingling the cards. "What in deil's name is this?"
- says he. "What kind of Whiggish, canting talk is this, for the
- house of Cluny Macpherson?"
-
- "I will put my hand in the fire for Mr. Balfour," says Alan. "He
- is an honest and a mettle gentleman, and I would have ye bear in
- mind who says it. I bear a king's name," says he, cocking his
- hat; "and I and any that I call friend are company for the best.
- But the gentleman is tired, and should sleep; if he has no mind
- to the cartes, it will never hinder you and me. And I'm fit and
- willing, sir, to play ye any game that ye can name."
-
- "Sir," says Cluny, "in this poor house of mine I would have you
- to ken that any gentleman may follow his pleasure. If your
- friend would like to stand on his head, he is welcome. And if
- either he, or you, or any other man, is not preceesely satisfied,
- I will be proud to step outside with him."
-
- I had no will that these two friends should cut their throats for
- my sake.
-
- "Sir," said I, "I am very wearied, as Alan says; and what's more,
- as you are a man that likely has sons of your own, I may tell you
- it was a promise to my father."
-
- "Say nae mair, say nae mair," said Cluny, and pointed me to a bed
- of heather in a corner of the Cage. For all that he was
- displeased enough, looked at me askance, and grumbled when he
- looked. And indeed it must be owned that both my scruples and
- the words in which I declared them, smacked somewhat of the
- Covenanter, and were little in their place among wild Highland
- Jacobites.
-
- What with the brandy and the venison, a strange heaviness had
- come over me; and I had scarce lain down upon the bed before I
- fell into a kind of trance, in which I continued almost the whole
- time of our stay in the Cage. Sometimes I was broad awake and
- understood what passed; sometimes I only heard voices, or men
- snoring, like the voice of a silly river; and the plaids upon the
- wall dwindled down and swelled out again, like firelight shadows
- on the roof. I must sometimes have spoken or cried out, for I
- remember I was now and then amazed at being answered; yet I was
- conscious of no particular nightmare, only of a general, black,
- abiding horror -- a horror of the place I was in, and the bed I
- lay in, and the plaids on the wall, and the voices, and the fire,
- and myself.
-
- The barber-gillie, who was a doctor too, was called in to
- prescribe for me; but as he spoke in the Gaelic, I understood not
- a word of his opinion, and was too sick even to ask for a
- translation. I knew well enough I was ill, and that was all I
- cared about.
-
- I paid little heed while I lay in this poor pass. But Alan and
- Cluny were most of the time at the cards, and I am clear that
- Alan must have begun by winning; for I remember sitting up, and
- seeing them hard at it, and a great glittering pile of as much as
- sixty or a hundred guineas on the table. It looked strange
- enough, to see all this wealth in a nest upon a cliff-side,
- wattled about growing trees. And even then, I thought it seemed
- deep water for Alan to be riding, who had no better battle-horse
- than a green purse and a matter of five pounds.
-
- The luck, it seems, changed on the second day. About noon I was
- wakened as usual for dinner, and as usual refused to eat, and was
- given a dram with some bitter infusion which the barber had
- prescribed. The sun was shining in at the open door of the Cage,
- and this dazzled and offended me. Cluny sat at the table, biting
- the pack of cards. Alan had stooped over the bed, and had his
- face close to my eyes; to which, troubled as they were with the
- fever, it seemed of the most shocking bigness.
-
- He asked me for a loan of my money.
-
- "What for?" said I.
-
- "O, just for a loan," said he.
-
- "But why?" I repeated. "I don't see."
-
- "Hut, David!" said Alan, "ye wouldnae grudge me a loan?"
-
- I would, though, if I had had my senses! But all I thought of
- then was to get his face away, and I handed him my money.
-
- On the morning of the third day, when we had been forty-eight
- hours in the Cage, I awoke with a great relief of spirits, very
- weak and weary indeed, but seeing things of the right size and
- with their honest, everyday appearance. I had a mind to eat,
- moreover, rose from bed of my own movement, and as soon as we had
- breakfasted, stepped to the entry of the Cage and sat down
- outside in the top of the wood. It was a grey day with a cool,
- mild air: and I sat in a dream all morning, only disturbed by the
- passing by of Cluny's scouts and servants coming with provisions
- and reports; for as the coast was at that time clear, you might
- almost say he held court openly.
-
- When I returned, he and Alan had laid the cards aside, and were
- questioning a gillie; and the chief turned about and spoke to me
- in the Gaelic.
-
- "I have no Gaelic, sir," said I.
-
- Now since the card question, everything I said or did had the
- power of annoying Cluny. "Your name has more sense than
- yourself, then," said he angrily. "for it's good Gaelic. But the
- point is this. My scout reports all clear in the south, and the
- question is, have ye the strength to go?"
-
- I saw cards on the table, but no gold; only a heap of little
- written papers, and these all on Cluny's side. Alan, besides,
- had an odd look, like a man not very well content; and I began to
- have a strong misgiving.
-
- "I do not know if I am as well as I should be," said I, looking
- at Alan; "but the little money we have has a long way to carry
- us."
-
- Alan took his under-lip into his mouth, and looked upon the
- ground.
-
- "David," says he at last, "I've lost it; there's the naked
- truth."
-
- "My money too?" said I.
-
- "Your money too," says Alan, with a groan. "Ye shouldnae have
- given it me. I'm daft when I get to the cartes."
-
- "Hoot-toot! hoot-toot!" said Cluny. "It was all daffing; it's all
- nonsense. Of course you'll have your money back again, and the
- double of it, if ye'll make so free with me. It would be a
- singular thing for me to keep it. It's not to be supposed that I
- would be any hindrance to gentlemen in your situation; that would
- be a singular thing!" cries he, and began to pull gold out of his
- pocket with a mighty red face.
-
- Alan said nothing, only looked on the ground.
-
- "Will you step to the door with me, sir?" said I.
-
- Cluny said he would be very glad, and followed me readily enough,
- but he looked flustered and put out.
-
- "And now, sir," says I, "I must first acknowledge your
- generosity."
-
- "Nonsensical nonsense!" cries Cluny. "Where's the generosity?
- This is just a most unfortunate affair; but what would ye have me
- do -- boxed up in this bee-skep of a cage of mine -- but just set
- my friends to the cartes, when I can get them? And if they lose,
- of course, it's not to be supposed ----" And here he came to a
- pause.
-
- "Yes," said I, "if they lose, you give them back their money; and
- if they win, they carry away yours in their pouches! I have said
- before that I grant your generosity; but to me, sir, it's a very
- painful thing to be placed in this position."
-
- There was a little silence, in which Cluny seemed always as if he
- was about to speak, but said nothing. All the time he grew
- redder and redder in the face.
-
- "I am a young man," said I, "and I ask your advice. Advise me
- as you would your son. My friend fairly lost his money, after
- having fairly gained a far greater sum of yours; can I accept it
- back again? Would that be the right part for me to play?
- Whatever I do, you can see for yourself it must be hard upon a
- man of any pride."
-
- "It's rather hard on me, too, Mr. Balfour," said Cluny, "and ye
- give me very much the look of a man that has entrapped poor
- people to their hurt. I wouldnae have my friends come to any
- house of mine to accept affronts; no," he cried, with a sudden
- heat of anger, "nor yet to give them!"
-
- "And so you see, sir," said I, "there is something to be said
- upon my side; and this gambling is a very poor employ for
- gentlefolks. But I am still waiting your opinion."
-
- I am sure if ever Cluny hated any man it was David Balfour. He
- looked me all over with a warlike eye, and I saw the challenge at
- his lips. But either my youth disarmed him, or perhaps his own
- sense of justice. Certainly it was a mortifying matter for all
- concerned, and not least Cluny; the more credit that he took it
- as he did.
-
- "Mr. Balfour," said he, "I think you are too nice and
- covenanting, but for all that you have the spirit of a very
- pretty gentleman. Upon my honest word, ye may take this money --
- it's what I would tell my son -- and here's my hand along with
- it!"
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV
-
- THE FLIGHT IN THE HEATHER: THE QUARREL
-
- Alan and I were put across Loch Errocht under cloud of night, and
- went down its eastern shore to another hiding-place near the head
- of Loch Rannoch, whither we were led by one of the gillies from
- the Cage. This fellow carried all our luggage and Alan's
- great-coat in the bargain, trotting along under the burthen, far
- less than the half of which used to weigh me to the ground, like
- a stout hill pony with a feather; yet he was a man that, in plain
- contest, I could have broken on my knee.
-
- Doubtless it was a great relief to walk disencumbered; and
- perhaps without that relief, and the consequent sense of liberty
- and lightness, I could not have walked at all. I was but new
- risen from a bed of sickness; and there was nothing in the state
- of our affairs to hearten me for much exertion; travelling, as we
- did, over the most dismal deserts in Scotland, under a cloudy
- heaven, and with divided hearts among the travellers.
-
- For long, we said nothing; marching alongside or one behind the
- other, each with a set countenance: I, angry and proud, and
- drawing what strength I had from these two violent and sinful
- feelings; Alan angry and ashamed, ashamed that he had lost my
- money, angry that I should take it so ill.
-
- The thought of a separation ran always the stronger in my mind;
- and the more I approved of it, the more ashamed I grew of my
- approval. It would be a fine, handsome, generous thing, indeed,
- for Alan to turn round and say to me: "Go, I am in the most
- danger, and my company only increases yours." But for me to turn
- to the friend who certainly loved me, and say to him: "You are in
- great danger, I am in but little; your friendship is a burden;
- go, take your risks and bear your hardships alone ----" no, that
- was impossible; and even to think of it privily to myself, made
- my cheeks to burn.
-
- And yet Alan had behaved like a child, and (what is worse) a
- treacherous child. Wheedling my money from me while I lay
- half-conscious was scarce better than theft; and yet here he was
- trudging by my side, without a penny to his name, and by what I
- could see, quite blithe to sponge upon the money he had driven me
- to beg. True, I was ready to share it with him; but it made me
- rage to see him count upon my readiness.
-
- These were the two things uppermost in my mind; and I could open
- my mouth upon neither without black ungenerosity. So I did the
- next worst, and said nothing, nor so much as looked once at my
- companion, save with the tail of my eye.
-
- At last, upon the other side of Loch Errocht, going over a
- smooth, rushy place, where the walking was easy, he could bear it
- no longer, and came close to me.
-
- "David," says he, "this is no way for two friends to take a small
- accident. I have to say that I'm sorry; and so that's said. And
- now if you have anything, ye'd better say it."
-
- "O," says I, "I have nothing."
-
- He seemed disconcerted; at which I was meanly pleased.
-
- "No," said he, with rather a trembling voice, "but when I say I
- was to blame?"
-
- "Why, of course, ye were to blame," said I, coolly; "and you will
- bear me out that I have never reproached you."
-
- "Never," says he; "but ye ken very well that ye've done worse.
- Are we to part? Ye said so once before. Are ye to say it again?
- There's hills and heather enough between here and the two seas,
- David; and I will own I'm no very keen to stay where I'm no
- wanted."
-
- This pierced me like a sword, and seemed to lay bare my private
- disloyalty.
-
- "Alan Breck!" I cried; and then: "Do you think I am one to turn
- my back on you in your chief need? You dursn't say it to my
- face. My whole conduct's there to give the lie to it. It's
- true, I fell asleep upon the muir; but that was from weariness,
- and you do wrong to cast it up to me----"
-
- "Which is what I never did," said Alan.
-
- "But aside from that," I continued, "what have I done that you
- should even me to dogs by such a supposition? I never yet failed
- a friend, and it's not likely I'll begin with you. There are
- things between us that I can never forget, even if you can."
-
- "I will only say this to ye, David," said Alan, very quietly,
- "that I have long been owing ye my life, and now I owe ye money.
- Ye should try to make that burden light for me."
-
- This ought to have touched me, and in a manner it did, but the
- wrong manner. I felt I was behaving, badly; and was now not only
- angry with Alan, but angry with myself in the bargain; and it
- made me the more cruel.
-
- "You asked me to speak," said I. "Well, then, I will. You own
- yourself that you have done me a disservice; I have had to
- swallow an affront: I have never reproached you, I never named
- the thing till you did. And now you blame me," cried I, "because
- I cannae laugh and sing as if I was glad to be affronted. The
- next thing will be that I'm to go down upon my knees and thank
- you for it! Ye should think more of others, Alan Breck. If ye
- thought more of others, ye would perhaps speak less about
- yourself; and when a friend that likes you very well has passed
- over an offence without a word, you would be blithe to let it
- lie, instead of making it a stick to break his back with. By
- your own way of it, it was you that was to blame; then it
- shouldnae be you to seek the quarrel."
-
- "Aweel," said Alan, "say nae mair."
-
- And we fell back into our former silence; and came to our
- journey's end, and supped, and lay down to sleep, without another
- word.
-
- The gillie put us across Loch Rannoch in the dusk of the next
- day, and gave us his opinion as to our best route. This was to
- get us up at once into the tops of the mountains: to go round by
- a circuit, turning the heads of Glen Lyon, Glen Lochay, and Glen
- Dochart, and come down upon the lowlands by Kippen and the upper
- waters of the Forth. Alan was little pleased with a route which
- led us through the country of his blood-foes, the Glenorchy
- Campbells. He objected that by turning to the east, we should
- come almost at once among the Athole Stewarts, a race of his own
- name and lineage, although following a different chief, and come
- besides by a far easier and swifter way to the place whither we
- were bound. But the gillie, who was indeed the chief man of
- Cluny's scouts, had good reasons to give him on all hands, naming
- the force of troops in every district, and alleging finally (as
- well as I could understand) that we should nowhere be so little
- troubled as in a country of the Campbells.
-
- Alan gave way at last, but with only half a heart. "It's one of
- the dowiest countries in Scotland," said he. "There's naething
- there that I ken, but heath, and crows, and Campbells. But I see
- that ye're a man of some penetration; and be it as ye please!"
-
- We set forth accordingly by this itinerary; and for the best part
- of three nights travelled on eerie mountains and among the
- well-heads of wild rivers; often buried in mist, almost
- continually blown and rained upon, and not once cheered by any
- glimpse of sunshine. By day, we lay and slept in the drenching
- heather; by night, incessantly clambered upon break-neck hills
- and among rude crags. We often wandered; we were often so
- involved in fog, that we must lie quiet till it lightened. A
- fire was never to be thought of. Our only food was drammach and
- a portion of cold meat that we had carried from the Cage; and as
- for drink, Heaven knows we had no want of water.
-
- This was a dreadful time, rendered the more dreadful by the gloom
- of the weather and the country. I was never warm; my teeth
- chattered in my head; I was troubled with a very sore throat,
- such as I had on the isle; I had a painful stitch in my side,
- which never left me; and when I slept in my wet bed, with the
- rain beating above and the mud oozing below me, it was to live
- over again in fancy the worst part of my adventures -- to see the
- tower of Shaws lit by lightning, Ransome carried below on the
- men's backs, Shuan dying on the round-house floor, or Colin
- Campbell grasping at the bosom of his coat. From such broken
- slumbers, I would be aroused in the gloaming, to sit up in the
- same puddle where I had slept, and sup cold drammach; the rain
- driving sharp in my face or running down my back in icy trickles;
- the mist enfolding us like as in a gloomy chamber -- or, perhaps,
- if the wind blew, falling suddenly apart and showing us the gulf
- of some dark valley where the streams were crying aloud.
-
- The sound of an infinite number of rivers came up from all round.
- In this steady rain the springs of the mountain were broken up;
- every glen gushed water like a cistern; every stream was in high
- spate, and had filled and overflowed its channel. During our
- night tramps, it was solemn to hear the voice of them below in
- the valleys, now booming like thunder, now with an angry cry. I
- could well understand the story of the Water Kelpie, that demon
- of the streams, who is fabled to keep wailing and roaring at the
- ford until the coming of the doomed traveller. Alan I saw
- believed it, or half believed it; and when the cry of the river
- rose more than usually sharp, I was little surprised (though, of
- course, I would still be shocked) to see him cross himself in the
- manner of the Catholics.
-
- During all these horrid wanderings we had no familiarity,
- scarcely even that of speech. The truth is that I was sickening
- for my grave, which is my best excuse. But besides that I was of
- an unforgiving disposition from my birth, slow to take offence,
- slower to forget it, and now incensed both against my companion
- and myself. For the best part of two days he was unweariedly
- kind; silent, indeed, but always ready to help, and always hoping
- (as I could very well see) that my displeasure would blow by.
- For the same length of time I stayed in myself, nursing my anger,
- roughly refusing his services, and passing him over with my eyes
- as if he had been a bush or a stone.
-
- The second night, or rather the peep of the third day, found us
- upon a very open hill, so that we could not follow our usual plan
- and lie down immediately to eat and sleep. Before we had reached
- a place of shelter, the grey had come pretty clear, for though it
- still rained, the clouds ran higher; and Alan, looking in my
- face, showed some marks of concern.
-
- "Ye had better let me take your pack," said he, for perhaps the
- ninth time since we had parted from the scout beside Loch
- Rannoch.
-
- "I do very well, I thank you," said I, as cold as ice.
-
- Alan flushed darkly. "I'll not offer it again," he said. "I'm
- not a patient man, David."
-
- "I never said you were," said I, which was exactly the rude,
- silly speech of a boy of ten.
-
- Alan made no answer at the time, but his conduct answered for
- him. Henceforth, it is to be thought, he quite forgave himself
- for the affair at Cluny's; cocked his hat again, walked jauntily,
- whistled airs, and looked at me upon one side with a provoking
- smile.
-
- The third night we were to pass through the western end of the
- country of Balquhidder. It came clear and cold, with a touch in
- the air like frost, and a northerly wind that blew the clouds
- away and made the stars bright. The streams were full, of
- course, and still made a great noise among the hills; but I
- observed that Alan thought no more upon the Kelpie, and was in
- high good spirits. As for me, the change of weather came too
- late; I had lain in the mire so long that (as the Bible has it)
- my very clothes "abhorred me." I was dead weary, deadly sick and
- full of pains and shiverings; the chill of the wind went through
- me, and the sound of it confused my ears. In this poor state I
- had to bear from my companion something in the nature of a
- persecution. He spoke a good deal, and never without a taunt.
- "Whig" was the best name he had to give me. "Here," he would
- say, "here's a dub for ye to jump, my Whiggie! I ken you're a
- fine jumper!" And so on; all the time with a gibing voice and
- face.
-
- I knew it was my own doing, and no one else's; but I was too
- miserable to repent. I felt I could drag myself but little
- farther; pretty soon, I must lie down and die on these wet
- mountains like a sheep or a fox, and my bones must whiten there
- like the bones of a beast. My head was light perhaps; but I
- began to love the prospect, I began to glory in the thought of
- such a death, alone in the desert, with the wild eagles besieging
- my last moments. Alan would repent then, I thought; he would
- remember, when I was dead, how much he owed me, and the
- remembrance would be torture. So I went like a sick, silly, and
- bad-hearted schoolboy, feeding my anger against a fellow-man,
- when I would have been better on my knees, crying on God for
- mercy. And at each of Alan's taunts, I hugged myself. "Ah!"
- thinks I to myself, "I have a better taunt in readiness; when I
- lie down and die, you will feel it like a buffet in your face;
- ah, what a revenge! ah, how you will regret your ingratitude and
- cruelty!"
-
- All the while, I was growing worse and worse. Once I had fallen,
- my leg simply doubling under me, and this had struck Alan for the
- moment; but I was afoot so briskly, and set off again with such a
- natural manner, that he soon forgot the incident. Flushes of
- heat went over me, and then spasms of shuddering. The stitch in
- my side was hardly bearable. At last I began to feel that I
- could trail myself no farther: and with that, there came on me
- all at once the wish to have it out with Alan, let my anger
- blaze, and be done with my life in a more sudden manner. He had
- just called me "Whig." I stopped.
-
- "Mr. Stewart," said I, in a voice that quivered like a
- fiddle-string, "you are older than I am, and should know your
- manners. Do you think it either very wise or very witty to cast
- my politics in my teeth? I thought, where folk differed, it was
- the part of gentlemen to differ civilly; and if I did not, I may
- tell you I could find a better taunt than some of yours."
-
- Alan had stopped opposite to me, his hat cocked, his hands in his
- breeches pockets, his head a little on one side. He listened,
- smiling evilly, as I could see by the starlight; and when I had
- done he began to whistle a Jacobite air. It was the air made in
- mockery of General Cope's defeat at Preston Pans:
-
- "Hey, Johnnie Cope, are ye waukin' yet?
- And are your drums a-beatin' yet?"
-
-
- And it came in my mind that Alan, on the day of that battle, had
- been engaged upon the royal side.
-
- "Why do ye take that air, Mr. Stewart?" said I. "Is that to
- remind me you have been beaten on both sides?"
-
- The air stopped on Alan's lips. "David!" said he.
-
- "But it's time these manners ceased," I continued; "and I mean
- you shall henceforth speak civilly of my King and my good friends
- the Campbells."
-
- "I am a Stewart --" began Alan.
-
- "O!" says I, "I ken ye bear a king's name. But you are to
- remember, since I have been in the Highlands, I have seen a good
- many of those that bear it; and the best I can say of them is
- this, that they would be none the worse of washing."
-
- "Do you know that you insult me?" said Alan, very low.
-
- "I am sorry for that," said I, "for I am not done; and if you
- distaste the sermon, I doubt the pirliecue[29] will please you as
- little. You have been chased in the field by the grown men of my
- party; it seems a poor kind of pleasure to out-face a boy. Both
- the Campbells and the Whigs have beaten you; you have run before
- them like a hare. It behoves you to speak of them as of your
- betters."
-
- [29] A second sermon.
-
-
- Alan stood quite still, the tails of his great-coat clapping
- behind him in the wind.
-
- "This is a pity" he said at last. "There are things said that
- cannot be passed over."
-
- "I never asked you to," said I. "I am as ready as yourself."
-
- "Ready?" said he.
-
- "Ready," I repeated. "I am no blower and boaster like some that
- I could name. Come on!" And drawing my sword, I fell on guard
- as Alan himself had taught me.
-
- "David!" he cried . "Are ye daft? I cannae draw upon ye, David.
- It's fair murder."
-
- "That was your look-out when you insulted me," said I.
-
- "It's the truth!" cried Alan, and he stood for a moment, wringing
- his mouth in his hand like a man in sore perplexity. "It's the
- bare truth," he said, and drew his sword. But before I could
- touch his blade with mine, he had thrown it from him and fallen
- to the ground. "Na, na," he kept saying, "na, na -- I cannae, I
- cannae."
-
- At this the last of my anger oozed all out of me; and I found
- myself only sick, and sorry, and blank, and wondering at myself.
- I would have given the world to take back what I had said; but a
- word once spoken, who can recapture it? I minded me of all
- Alan's kindness and courage in the past, how he had helped and
- cheered and borne with me in our evil days; and then recalled my
- own insults, and saw that I had lost for ever that doughty
- friend. At the same time, the sickness that hung upon me seemed
- to redouble, and the pang in my side was like a sword for
- sharpness. I thought I must have swooned where I stood.
-
- This it was that gave me a thought. No apology could blot out
- what I had said; it was needless to think of one, none could
- cover the offence; but where an apology was vain, a mere cry for
- help might bring Alan back to my side. I put my pride away from
- me. "Alan!" I said; "if ye cannae help me, I must just die
- here."
-
- He started up sitting, and looked at me.
-
- "It's true," said I. "I'm by with it. O, let me get into the
- bield of a house -- I'll can die there easier." I had no need to
- pretend; whether I chose or not, I spoke in a weeping voice that
- would have melted a heart of stone.
-
- "Can ye walk?" asked Alan.
-
- "No," said I, "not without help. This last hour my legs have
- been fainting under me; I've a stitch in my side like a red-hot
- iron; I cannae breathe right. If I die, ye'll can forgive me,
- Alan? In my heart, I liked ye fine -- even when I was the
- angriest."
-
- "Wheesht, wheesht!" cried Alan. "Dinna say that! David man, ye
- ken --" He shut his mouth upon a sob. "Let me get my arm about
- ye," he continued; "that's the way! Now lean upon me hard. Gude
- kens where there's a house! We're in Balwhidder, too; there
- should be no want of houses, no, nor friends' houses here. Do ye
- gang easier so, Davie?"
-
- "Ay" said I, "I can be doing this way;" and I pressed his arm
- with my hand.
-
- Again he came near sobbing. "Davie," said he, "I'm no a right
- man at all; I have neither sense nor kindness; I could nae
- remember ye were just a bairn, I couldnae see ye were dying on
- your feet; Davie, ye'll have to try and forgive me."
-
- "O man, let's say no more about it!" said I. "We're neither one
- of us to mend the other -- that's the truth! We must just bear
- and forbear, man Alan. O, but my stitch is sore! Is there nae
- house?"
-
- "I'll find a house to ye, David," he said, stoutly. "We'll
- follow down the burn, where there's bound to be houses. My poor
- man, will ye no be better on my back?"
-
- "O, Alan," says I, "and me a good twelve inches taller?"
-
- "Ye're no such a thing," cried Alan, with a start. "There may be
- a trifling matter of an inch or two; I'm no saying I'm just
- exactly what ye would call a tall man, whatever; and I dare say,"
- he added, his voice tailing off in a laughable manner, "now when
- I come to think of it, I dare say ye'll be just about right. Ay,
- it'll be a foot, or near hand; or may be even mair!"
-
- It was sweet and laughable to hear Alan eat his words up in the
- fear of some fresh quarrel. I could have laughed, had not my
- stitch caught me so hard; but if I had laughed, I think I must
- have wept too.
-
- "Alan," cried I, "what makes ye so good to me? What makes ye
- care for such a thankless fellow?"
-
- "'Deed, and I don't, know" said Alan. "For just precisely what I
- thought I liked about ye, was that ye never quarrelled: -- and
- now I like ye better!"
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV
-
- IN BALQUHIDDER
-
- At the door of the first house we came to, Alan knocked, which
- was of no very safe enterprise in such a part of the Highlands as
- the Braes of Balquhidder. No great clan held rule there; it was
- filled and disputed by small septs, and broken remnants, and what
- they call "chiefless folk," driven into the wild country about
- the springs of Forth and Teith by the advance of the Campbells.
- Here were Stewarts and Maclarens, which came to the same thing,
- for the Maclarens followed Alan's chief in war, and made but one
- clan with Appin. Here, too, were many of that old, proscribed,
- nameless, red-handed clan of the Macgregors. They had always
- been ill-considered, and now worse than ever, having credit with
- no side or party in the whole country of Scotland. Their chief,
- Macgregor of Macgregor, was in exile; the more immediate leader
- of that part of them about Balquhidder, James More, Rob Roy's
- eldest son, lay waiting his trial in Edinburgh Castle; they were
- in ill-blood with Highlander and Lowlander, with the Grahames,
- the Maclarens, and the Stewarts; and Alan, who took up the
- quarrel of any friend, however distant, was extremely wishful to
- avoid them.
-
- Chance served us very well; for it was a household of Maclarens
- that we found, where Alan was not only welcome for his name's
- sake but known by reputation. Here then I was got to bed without
- delay, and a doctor fetched, who found me in a sorry plight. But
- whether because he was a very good doctor, or I a very young,
- strong man, I lay bedridden for no more than a week, and before a
- month I was able to take the road again with a good heart.
-
- All this time Alan would not leave me though I often pressed him,
- and indeed his foolhardiness in staying was a common subject of
- outcry with the two or three friends that were let into the
- secret. He hid by day in a hole of the braes under a little
- wood; and at night, when the coast was clear, would come into the
- house to visit me. I need not say if I was pleased to see him;
- Mrs. Maclaren, our hostess, thought nothing good enough for such
- a guest; and as Duncan Dhu (which was the name of our host) had a
- pair of pipes in his house, and was much of a lover of music,
- this time of my recovery was quite a festival, and we commonly
- turned night into day.
-
- The soldiers let us be; although once a party of two companies
- and some dragoons went by in the bottom of the valley, where I
- could see them through the window as I lay in bed. What was much
- more astonishing, no magistrate came near me, and there was no
- question put of whence I came or whither I was going; and in that
- time of excitement, I was as free of all inquiry as though I had
- lain in a desert. Yet my presence was known before I left to all
- the people in Balquhidder and the adjacent parts; many coming
- about the house on visits and these (after the custom of the
- country) spreading the news among their neighbours. The bills,
- too, had now been printed. There was one pinned near the foot of
- my bed, where I could read my own not very flattering portrait
- and, in larger characters, the amount of the blood money that had
- been set upon my life. Duncan Dhu and the rest that knew that I
- had come there in Alan's company, could have entertained no doubt
- of who I was; and many others must have had their guess. For
- though I had changed my clothes, I could not change my age or
- person; and Lowland boys of eighteen were not so rife in these
- parts of the world, and above all about that time, that they
- could fail to put one thing with another, and connect me with the
- bill. So it was, at least. Other folk keep a secret among two
- or three near friends, and somehow it leaks out; but among these
- clansmen, it is told to a whole countryside, and they will keep
- it for a century.
-
- There was but one thing happened worth narrating; and that is the
- visit I had of Robin Oig, one of the sons of the notorious Rob
- Roy. He was sought upon all sides on a charge of carrying a
- young woman from Balfron and marrying her (as was alleged) by
- force; yet he stepped about Balquhidder like a gentleman in his
- own walled policy. It was he who had shot James Maclaren at the
- plough stilts, a quarrel never satisfied; yet he walked into the
- house of his blood enemies as a rider[30] might into a public
- inn.
-
- [30]Commercial traveller.
-
-
- Duncan had time to pass me word of who it was; and we looked at
- one another in concern. You should understand, it was then close
- upon the time of Alan's coming; the two were little likely to
- agree; and yet if we sent word or sought to make a signal, it was
- sure to arouse suspicion in a man under so dark a cloud as the
- Macgregor.
-
- He came in with a great show of civility, but like a man among
- inferiors; took off his bonnet to Mrs. Maclaren, but clapped it
- on his head again to speak to Duncan; and leaving thus set
- himself (as he would have thought) in a proper light, came to my
- bedside and bowed.
-
- "I am given to know, sir," says he, "that your name is Balfour."
-
- "They call me David Balfour," said I, "at your service."
-
- "I would give ye my name in return, sir" he replied, "but it's
- one somewhat blown upon of late days; and it'll perhaps suffice
- if I tell ye that I am own brother to James More Drummond or
- Macgregor, of whom ye will scarce have failed to hear."
-
- "No, sir," said I, a little alarmed; "nor yet of your father,
- Macgregor-Campbell." And I sat up and bowed in bed; for I
- thought best to compliment him, in case he was proud of having
- had an outlaw to his father.
-
- He bowed in return. "But what I am come to say, sir," he went
- on, "is this. In the year '45, my brother raised a part of the
- 'Gregara' and marched six companies to strike a stroke for the
- good side; and the surgeon that marched with our clan and cured
- my brother's leg when it was broken in the brush at Preston Pans,
- was a gentleman of the same name precisely as yourself. He was
- brother to Balfour of Baith; and if you are in any reasonable
- degree of nearness one of that gentleman's kin, I have come to
- put myself and my people at your command."
-
- You are to remember that I knew no more of my descent than any
- cadger's dog; my uncle, to be sure, had prated of some of our
- high connections, but nothing to the present purpose; and there
- was nothing left me but that bitter disgrace of owning that I
- could not tell.
-
- Robin told me shortly he was sorry he had put himself about,
- turned his back upon me without a sign of salutation, and as he
- went towards the door, I could hear him telling Duncan that I was
- "only some kinless loon that didn't know his own father." Angry
- as I was at these words, and ashamed of my own ignorance, I could
- scarce keep from smiling that a man who was under the lash of the
- law (and was indeed hanged some three years later) should be so
- nice as to the descent of his acquaintances.
-
- Just in the door, he met Alan coming in; and the two drew back
- and looked at each other like strange dogs. They were neither of
- them big men, but they seemed fairly to swell out with pride.
- Each wore a sword, and by a movement of his haunch, thrust clear
- the hilt of it, so that it might be the more readily grasped and
- the blade drawn.
-
- "Mr. Stewart, I am thinking," says Robin.
-
- "Troth, Mr. Macgregor, it's not a name to be ashamed of,"
- answered Alan.
-
- "I did not know ye were in my country, sir," says Robin.
-
- "It sticks in my mind that I am in the country of my friends the
- Maclarens," says Alan.
-
- "That's a kittle point," returned the other. "There may be two
- words to say to that. But I think I will have heard that you are
- a man of your sword?"
-
- "Unless ye were born deaf, Mr. Macgregor, ye will have heard a
- good deal more than that," says Alan. "I am not the only man
- that can draw steel in Appin; and when my kinsman and captain,
- Ardshiel, had a talk with a gentleman of your name, not so many
- years back, I could never hear that the Macgregor had the best of
- it."
-
- "Do ye mean my father, sir?" says Robin.
-
- "Well, I wouldnae wonder," said Alan. "The gentleman I have in
- my mind had the ill-taste to clap Campbell to his name."
-
- "My father was an old man," returned Robin.
-
- "The match was unequal. You and me would make a better pair,
- sir."
-
- "I was thinking that," said Alan.
-
- I was half out of bed, and Duncan had been hanging at the elbow
- of these fighting cocks, ready to intervene upon the least
- occasion. But when that word was uttered, it was a case of now
- or never; and Duncan, with something of a white face to be sure,
- thrust himself between.
-
- "Gentlemen," said he, "I will have been thinking of a very
- different matter, whateffer. Here are my pipes, and here are you
- two gentlemen who are baith acclaimed pipers. It's an auld
- dispute which one of ye's the best. Here will be a braw chance
- to settle it."
-
- "Why, sir," said Alan, still addressing Robin, from whom indeed
- he had not so much as shifted his eyes, nor yet Robin from him,
- "why, sir," says Alan, "I think I will have heard some sough[31]
- of the sort. Have ye music, as folk say? Are ye a bit of a
- piper?"
-
- [31]Rumour.
-
-
- "I can pipe like a Macrimmon!" cries Robin.
-
- "And that is a very bold word," quoth Alan.
-
- "I have made bolder words good before now," returned Robin, "and
- that against better adversaries."
-
- "It is easy to try that," says Alan.
-
- Duncan Dhu made haste to bring out the pair of pipes that was his
- principal possession, and to set before his guests a mutton-ham
- and a bottle of that drink which they call Athole brose, and
- which is made of old whiskey, strained honey and sweet cream,
- slowly beaten together in the right order and proportion. The
- two enemies were still on the very breach of a quarrel; but down
- they sat, one upon each side of the peat fire, with a mighty show
- of politeness. Maclaren pressed them to taste his mutton-ham and
- "the wife's brose," reminding them the wife was out of Athole and
- had a name far and wide for her skill in that confection. But
- Robin put aside these hospitalities as bad for the breath.
-
- "I would have ye to remark, sir," said Alan, "that I havenae
- broken bread for near upon ten hours, which will be worse for the
- breath than any brose in Scotland."
-
- "I will take no advantages, Mr. Stewart," replied Robin. "Eat
- and drink; I'll follow you."
-
- Each ate a small portion of the ham and drank a glass of the
- brose to Mrs. Maclaren; and then after a great number of
- civilities, Robin took the pipes and played a little spring in a
- very ranting manner.
-
- "Ay, ye can, blow" said Alan; and taking the instrument from his
- rival, he first played the same spring in a manner identical with
- Robin's; and then wandered into variations, which, as he went on,
- he decorated with a perfect flight of grace-notes, such as pipers
- love, and call the "warblers."
-
- I had been pleased with Robin's playing, Alan's ravished me.
-
- "That's no very bad, Mr. Stewart," said the rival, "but ye show a
- poor device in your warblers."
-
- "Me!" cried Alan, the blood starting to his face. "I give ye the
- lie."
-
- "Do ye own yourself beaten at the pipes, then," said Robin, "that
- ye seek to change them for the sword?"
-
- "And that's very well said, Mr. Macgregor," returned Alan; "and
- in the meantime" (laying a strong accent on the word) "I take
- back the lie. I appeal to Duncan."
-
- "Indeed, ye need appeal to naebody," said Robin. "Ye're a far
- better judge than any Maclaren in Balquhidder: for it's a God's
- truth that you're a very creditable piper for a Stewart. Hand me
- the pipes." Alan did as he asked; and Robin proceeded to imitate
- and correct some part of Alan's variations, which it seemed that
- he remembered perfectly.
-
- "Ay, ye have music," said Alan, gloomily.
-
- "And now be the judge yourself, Mr. Stewart," said Robin; and
- taking up the variations from the beginning, he worked them
- throughout to so new a purpose, with such ingenuity and
- sentiment, and with so odd a fancy and so quick a knack in the
- grace-notes, that I was amazed to hear him.
-
- As for Alan, his face grew dark and hot, and he sat and gnawed
- his fingers, like a man under some deep affront. "Enough!" he
- cried. "Ye can blow the pipes -- make the most of that." And he
- made as if to rise.
-
- But Robin only held out his hand as if to ask for silence, and
- struck into the slow measure of a pibroch. It was a fine piece of
- music in itself, and nobly played; but it seems, besides, it was
- a piece peculiar to the Appin Stewarts and a chief favourite with
- Alan. The first notes were scarce out, before there came a
- change in his face; when the time quickened, he seemed to grow
- restless in his seat; and long before that piece was at an end,
- the last signs of his anger died from him, and he had no thought
- but for the music.
-
- "Robin Oig," he said, when it was done, "ye are a great piper. I
- am not fit to blow in the same kingdom with ye. Body of me! ye
- have mair music in your sporran than I have in my head! And
- though it still sticks in my mind that I could maybe show ye
- another of it with the cold steel, I warn ye beforehand -- it'll
- no be fair! It would go against my heart to haggle a man that
- can blow the pipes as you can!"
-
- Thereupon that quarrel was made up; all night long the brose was
- going and the pipes changing hands; and the day had come pretty
- bright, and the three men were none the better for what they had
- been taking, before Robin as much as thought upon the road.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI
-
- END OF THE FLIGHT: WE PASS THE FORTH
-
- The month, as I have said, was not yet out, but it was already
- far through August, and beautiful warm weather, with every sign
- of an early and great harvest, when I was pronounced able for my
- journey. Our money was now run to so low an ebb that we must
- think first of all on speed; for if we came not soon to Mr.
- Rankeillor's, or if when we came there he should fail to help me,
- we must surely starve. In Alan's view, besides, the hunt must
- have now greatly slackened; and the line of the Forth and even
- Stirling Bridge, which is the main pass over that river, would be
- watched with little interest.
-
- "It's a chief principle in military affairs," said he, "to go
- where ye are least expected. Forth is our trouble; ye ken the
- saying, 'Forth bridles the wild Hielandman.' Well, if we seek to
- creep round about the head of that river and come down by Kippen
- or Balfron, it's just precisely there that they'll be looking to
- lay hands on us. But if we stave on straight to the auld Brig of
- Stirling, I'll lay my sword they let us pass unchallenged."
-
- The first night, accordingly, we pushed to the house of a
- Maclaren in Strathire, a friend of Duncan's, where we slept the
- twenty-first of the month, and whence we set forth again about
- the fall of night to make another easy stage. The twenty-second
- we lay in a heather bush on the hillside in Uam Var, within view
- of a herd of deer, the happiest ten hours of sleep in a fine,
- breathing sunshine and on bone-dry ground, that I have ever
- tasted. That night we struck Allan Water, and followed it down;
- and coming to the edge of the hills saw the whole Carse of
- Stirling underfoot, as flat as a pancake, with the town and
- castle on a hill in the midst of it, and the moon shining on the
- Links of Forth.
-
- "Now," said Alan, "I kenna if ye care, but ye're in your own land
- again. We passed the Hieland Line in the first hour; and now if
- we could but pass yon crooked water, we might cast our bonnets in
- the air."
-
- In Allan Water, near by where it falls into the Forth, we found a
- little sandy islet, overgrown with burdock, butterbur and the
- like low plants, that would just cover us if we lay flat. Here
- it was we made our camp, within plain view of Stirling Castle,
- whence we could hear the drums beat as some part of the garrison
- paraded. Shearers worked all day in a field on one side of the
- river, and we could hear the stones going on the hooks and the
- voices and even the words of the men talking. It behoved to lie
- close and keep silent. But the sand of the little isle was
- sun-warm, the green plants gave us shelter for our heads, we had
- food and drink in plenty; and to crown all, we were within sight
- of safety.
-
- As soon as the shearers quit their work and the dusk began to
- fall, we waded ashore and struck for the Bridge of Stirling,
- keeping to the fields and under the field fences.
-
- The bridge is close under the castle hill, an old, high, narrow
- bridge with pinnacles along the parapet; and you may conceive
- with how much interest I looked upon it, not only as a place
- famous in history, but as the very doors of salvation to Alan and
- myself. The moon was not yet up when we came there; a few lights
- shone along the front of the fortress, and lower down a few
- lighted windows in the town; but it was all mighty still, and
- there seemed to be no guard upon the passage.
-
- I was for pushing straight across; but Alan was more wary.
-
- "It looks unco' quiet," said he; "but for all that we'll lie down
- here cannily behind a dyke, and make sure."
-
- So we lay for about a quarter of an hour, whiles whispering,
- whiles lying still and hearing nothing earthly but the washing of
- the water on the piers. At last there came by an old, hobbling
- woman with a crutch stick; who first stopped a little, close to
- where we lay, and bemoaned herself and the long way she had
- travelled; and then set forth again up the steep spring of the
- bridge. The woman was so little, and the night still so dark,
- that we soon lost sight of her; only heard the sound of her
- steps, and her stick, and a cough that she had by fits, draw
- slowly farther away.
-
- "She's bound to be across now," I whispered.
-
- "Na," said Alan, "her foot still sounds boss[32] upon the
- bridge."
-
- [32]Hollow.
-
-
- And just then -- "Who goes?" cried a voice, and we heard the butt
- of a musket rattle on the stones. I must suppose the sentry had
- been sleeping, so that had we tried, we might have passed unseen;
- but he was awake now, and the chance forfeited.
-
- "This'll never do," said Alan. "This'll never, never do for us,
- David."
-
- And without another word, he began to crawl away through the
- fields; and a little after, being well out of eye-shot, got to
- his feet again, and struck along a road that led to the eastward.
- I could not conceive what he was doing; and indeed I was so
- sharply cut by the disappointment, that I was little likely to be
- pleased with anything. A moment back and I had seen myself
- knocking at Mr. Rankeillor's door to claim my inheritance, like a
- hero in a ballad; and here was I back again, a wandering, hunted
- blackguard, on the wrong side of Forth.
-
- "Well?" said I.
-
- "Well," said Alan, "what would ye have? They're none such fools
- as I took them for. We have still the Forth to pass, Davie --
- weary fall the rains that fed and the hillsides that guided it!"
-
- "And why go east?" said I.
-
- "Ou, just upon the chance!" said he. "If we cannae pass the
- river, we'll have to see what we can do for the firth."
-
- "There are fords upon the river, and none upon the firth," said
- I.
-
- "To be sure there are fords, and a bridge forbye," quoth Alan;
- "and of what service, when they are watched?"
-
- "Well," said I, "but a river can be swum."
-
- "By them that have the skill of it," returned he; "but I have yet
- to hear that either you or me is much of a hand at that exercise;
- and for my own part, I swim like a stone."
-
- "I'm not up to you in talking back, Alan," I said; "but I can see
- we're making bad worse. If it's hard to pass a river, it stands
- to reason it must be worse to pass a sea."
-
- "But there's such a thing as a boat," says Alan, "or I'm the more
- deceived."
-
- "Ay, and such a thing as money," says I. "But for us that have
- neither one nor other, they might just as well not have been
- invented."
-
- "Ye think so?" said Alan.
-
- "I do that," said I.
-
- "David," says he, "ye're a man of small invention and less faith.
- But let me set my wits upon the hone, and if I cannae beg,
- borrow, nor yet steal a boat, I'll make one!"
-
- "I think I see ye!" said I. "And what's more than all that: if
- ye pass a bridge, it can tell no tales; but if we pass the firth,
- there's the boat on the wrong side -- somebody must have brought
- it -- the country-side will all be in a bizz ---"
-
- "Man!" cried Alan, "if I make a boat, I'll make a body to take it
- back again! So deave me with no more of your nonsense, but walk
- (for that's what you've got to do) --and let Alan think for ye."
-
- All night, then, we walked through the north side of the Carse
- under the high line of the Ochil mountains; and by Alloa and
- Clackmannan and Culross, all of which we avoided: and about ten
- in the morning, mighty hungry and tired, came to the little
- clachan of Limekilns. This is a place that sits near in by the
- water-side, and looks across the Hope to the town of the
- Queensferry. Smoke went up from both of these, and from other
- villages and farms upon all hands. The fields were being reaped;
- two ships lay anchored, and boats were coming and going on the
- Hope. It was altogether a right pleasant sight to me; and I
- could not take my fill of gazing at these comfortable, green,
- cultivated hills and the busy people both of the field and sea.
-
- For all that, there was Mr. Rankeillor's house on the south
- shore, where I had no doubt wealth awaited me; and here was I
- upon the north, clad in poor enough attire of an outlandish
- fashion, with three silver shillings left to me of all my
- fortune, a price set upon my head, and an outlawed man for my
- sole company.
-
- "O, Alan!" said I, "to think of it! Over there, there's all that
- heart could want waiting me; and the birds go over, and the boats
- go over -- all that please can go, but just me only! O, man, but
- it's a heart-break!"
-
- In Limekilns we entered a small change-house, which we only knew
- to be a public by the wand over the door, and bought some bread
- and cheese from a good-looking lass that was the servant. This
- we carried with us in a bundle, meaning to sit and eat it in a
- bush of wood on the sea-shore, that we saw some third part of a
- mile in front. As we went, I kept looking across the water and
- sighing to myself; and though I took no heed of it, Alan had
- fallen into a muse. At last he stopped in the way.
-
- "Did ye take heed of the lass we bought this of?" says he,
- tapping on the bread and cheese.
-
- "To be sure," said I, "and a bonny lass she was."
-
- "Ye thought that?" cries he. "Man, David, that's good news."
-
- "In the name of all that's wonderful, why so?" says I. "What
- good can that do?"
-
- "Well," said Alan, with one of his droll looks, "I was rather in
- hopes it would maybe get us that boat."
-
- "If it were the other way about, it would be liker it," said I.
-
- "That's all that you ken, ye see," said Alan. "I don't want the
- lass to fall in love with ye, I want her to be sorry for ye,
- David; to which end there is no manner of need that she should
- take you for a beauty. Let me see" (looking me curiously over).
- "I wish ye were a wee thing paler; but apart from that ye'll do
- fine for my purpose -- ye have a fine, hang-dog, rag-and-tatter,
- clappermaclaw kind of a look to ye, as if ye had stolen the coat
- from a potato-bogle. Come; right about, and back to the
- change-house for that boat of ours."
-
- I followed him, laughing.
-
- "David Balfour," said he, "ye're a very funny gentleman by your
- way of it, and this is a very funny employ for ye, no doubt. For
- all that, if ye have any affection for my neck (to say nothing of
- your own) ye will perhaps be kind enough to take this matter
- responsibly. I am going to do a bit of play-acting, the bottom
- ground of which is just exactly as serious as the gallows for the
- pair of us. So bear it, if ye please, in mind, and conduct
- yourself according."
-
- "Well, well," said I, "have it as you will."
-
- As we got near the clachan, he made me take his arm and hang upon
- it like one almost helpless with weariness; and by the time he
- pushed open the change-house door, he seemed to be half carrying
- me. The maid appeared surprised (as well she might be) at our
- speedy return; but Alan had no words to spare for her in
- explanation, helped me to a chair, called for a tass of brandy
- with which he fed me in little sips, and then breaking up the
- bread and cheese helped me to eat it like a nursery-lass; the
- whole with that grave, concerned, affectionate countenance, that
- might have imposed upon a judge. It was small wonder if the maid
- were taken with the picture we presented, of a poor, sick,
- overwrought lad and his most tender comrade. She drew quite
- near, and stood leaning with her back on the next table.
-
- "What's like wrong with him?" said she at last.
-
- Alan turned upon her, to my great wonder, with a kind of fury.
- "Wrong?" cries he. "He's walked more hundreds of miles than he
- has hairs upon his chin, and slept oftener in wet heather than
- dry sheets. Wrong, quo' she! Wrong enough, I would think!
- Wrong, indeed!" and he kept grumbling to himself as he fed me,
- like a man ill-pleased.
-
- "He's young for the like of that," said the maid.
-
- "Ower young," said Alan, with his back to her.
-
- "He would be better riding," says she.
-
- "And where could I get a horse to him?" cried Alan, turning on
- her with the same appearance of fury. "Would ye have me steal?"
-
- I thought this roughness would have sent her off in dudgeon, as
- indeed it closed her mouth for the time. But my companion knew
- very well what he was doing; and for as simple as he was in some
- things of life, had a great fund of roguishness in such affairs
- as these.
-
- "Ye neednae tell me," she said at last -- "ye're gentry."
-
- "Well," said Alan, softened a little (I believe against his will)
- by this artless comment, "and suppose we were? Did ever you hear
- that gentrice put money in folk's pockets?"
-
- She sighed at this, as if she were herself some disinherited
- great lady. "No," says she, "that's true indeed."
-
- I was all this while chafing at the part I played, and sitting
- tongue-tied between shame and merriment; but somehow at this I
- could hold in no longer, and bade Alan let me be, for I was
- better already. My voice stuck in my throat, for I ever hated to
- take part in lies; but my very embarrassment helped on the plot,
- for the lass no doubt set down my husky voice to sickness and
- fatigue.
-
- "Has he nae friends?" said she, in a tearful voice.
-
- "That has he so!" cried Alan, "if we could but win to them! --
- friends and rich friends, beds to lie in, food to eat, doctors to
- see to him -- and here he must tramp in the dubs and sleep in the
- heather like a beggarman."
-
- "And why that?" says the lass.
-
- "My dear," said Alan, "I cannae very safely say; but I'll tell ye
- what I'll do instead," says he, "I'll whistle ye a bit tune."
- And with that he leaned pretty far over the table, and in a mere
- breath of a whistle, but with a wonderful pretty sentiment, gave
- her a few bars of "Charlie is my darling."
-
- "Wheesht," says she, and looked over her shoulder to the door.
-
- "That's it," said Alan.
-
- "And him so young!" cries the lass.
-
- "He's old enough to----" and Alan struck his forefinger on the
- back part of his neck, meaning that I was old enough to lose my
- head.
-
- "It would be a black shame," she cried, flushing high.
-
- "It's what will be, though," said Alan, "unless we manage the
- better."
-
- At this the lass turned and ran out of that part of the house,
- leaving us alone together. Alan in high good humour at the
- furthering of his schemes, and I in bitter dudgeon at being
- called a Jacobite and treated like a child.
-
- "Alan," I cried, "I can stand no more of this."
-
- "Ye'll have to sit it then, Davie," said he. "For if ye upset
- the pot now, ye may scrape your own life out of the fire, but
- Alan Breck is a dead man."
-
- This was so true that I could only groan; and even my groan
- served Alan's purpose, for it was overheard by the lass as she
- came flying in again with a dish of white puddings and a bottle
- of strong ale.
-
- "Poor lamb!" says she, and had no sooner set the meat before us,
- than she touched me on the shoulder with a little friendly touch,
- as much as to bid me cheer up. Then she told us to fall to, and
- there would be no more to pay; for the inn was her own, or at
- least her father's, and he was gone for the day to Pittencrieff.
- We waited for no second bidding, for bread and cheese is but cold
- comfort and the puddings smelt excellently well; and while we sat
- and ate, she took up that same place by the next table, looking
- on, and thinking, and frowning to herself, and drawing the string
- of her apron through her hand.
-
- "I'm thinking ye have rather a long tongue," she said at last to
- Alan.
-
- "Ay" said Alan; "but ye see I ken the folk I speak to."
-
- "I would never betray ye," said she, "if ye mean that."
-
- "No," said he, "ye're not that kind. But I'll tell ye what ye
- would do, ye would help."
-
- "I couldnae," said she, shaking her head. "Na, I couldnae."
-
- "No," said he, "but if ye could?"
-
- She answered him nothing.
-
- "Look here, my lass," said Alan, "there are boats in the Kingdom
- of Fife, for I saw two (no less) upon the beach, as I came in by
- your town's end. Now if we could have the use of a boat to pass
- under cloud of night into Lothian, and some secret, decent kind
- of a man to bring that boat back again and keep his counsel,
- there would be two souls saved -- mine to all likelihood -- his
- to a dead surety. If we lack that boat, we have but three
- shillings left in this wide world; and where to go, and how to
- do, and what other place there is for us except the chains of a
- gibbet -- I give you my naked word, I kenna! Shall we go
- wanting, lassie? Are ye to lie in your warm bed and think upon
- us, when the wind gowls in the chimney and the rain tirls on the
- roof? Are ye to eat your meat by the cheeks of a red fire, and
- think upon this poor sick lad of mine, biting his finger ends on
- a blae muir for cauld and hunger? Sick or sound, he must aye be
- moving; with the death grapple at his throat he must aye be
- trailing in the rain on the lang roads; and when he gants his
- last on a rickle of cauld stanes, there will be nae friends near
- him but only me and God."
-
- At this appeal, I could see the lass was in great trouble of
- mind, being tempted to help us, and yet in some fear she might be
- helping malefactors; and so now I determined to step in myself
- and to allay her scruples with a portion of the truth.
-
- "Did ever you, hear" said I, "of Mr. Rankeillor of the Ferry?"
-
- "Rankeillor the writer?" said she. "I daur say that!"
-
- "Well," said I, "it's to his door that I am bound, so you may
- judge by that if I am an ill-doer; and I will tell you more, that
- though I am indeed, by a dreadful error, in some peril of my
- life, King George has no truer friend in all Scotland than
- myself."
-
- Her face cleared up mightily at this, although Alan's darkened.
-
- "That's more than I would ask," said she. "Mr. Rankeillor is a
- kennt man." And she bade us finish our meat, get clear of the
- clachan as soon as might be, and lie close in the bit wood on the
- sea-beach. "And ye can trust me," says she, "I'll find some
- means to put you over."
-
- At this we waited for no more, but shook hands with her upon the
- bargain, made short work of the puddings, and set forth again
- from Limekilns as far as to the wood. It was a small piece of
- perhaps a score of elders and hawthorns and a few young ashes,
- not thick enough to veil us from passersby upon the road or
- beach. Here we must lie, however, making the best of the brave
- warm weather and the good hopes we now had of a deliverance, and
- planing more particularly what remained for us to do.
-
- We had but one trouble all day; when a strolling piper came and
- sat in the same wood with us; a red-nosed, bleareyed, drunken
- dog, with a great bottle of whisky in his pocket, and a long
- story of wrongs that had been done him by all sorts of persons,
- from the Lord President of the Court of Session, who had denied
- him justice, down to the Bailies of Inverkeithing who had given
- him more of it than he desired. It was impossible but he should
- conceive some suspicion of two men lying all day concealed in a
- thicket and having no business to allege. As long as he stayed
- there he kept us in hot water with prying questions; and after he
- was gone, as he was a man not very likely to hold his tongue, we
- were in the greater impatience to be gone ourselves.
-
- The day came to an end with the same brightness; the night fell
- quiet and clear; lights came out in houses and hamlets and then,
- one after another, began to be put out; but it was past eleven,
- and we were long since strangely tortured with anxieties, before
- we heard the grinding of oars upon the rowing-pins. At that, we
- looked out and saw the lass herself coming rowing to us in a
- boat. She had trusted no one with our affairs, not even her
- sweetheart, if she had one; but as soon as her father was asleep,
- had left the house by a window, stolen a neighbour's boat, and
- come to our assistance single-handed.
-
- I was abashed how to find expression for my thanks; but she was
- no less abashed at the thought of hearing them; begged us to lose
- no time and to hold our peace, saying (very properly) that the
- heart of our matter was in haste and silence; and so, what with
- one thing and another, she had set us on the Lothian shore not
- far from Carriden, had shaken hands with us, and was out again at
- sea and rowing for Limekilns, before there was one word said
- either of her service or our gratitude.
-
- Even after she was gone, we had nothing to say, as indeed nothing
- was enough for such a kindness. Only Alan stood a great while
- upon the shore shaking his head.
-
- "It is a very fine lass," he said at last. "David, it is a very
- fine lass." And a matter of an hour later, as we were lying in a
- den on the sea-shore and I had been already dozing, he broke out
- again in commendations of her character. For my part, I could
- say nothing, she was so simple a creature that my heart smote me
- both with remorse and fear: remorse because we had traded upon
- her ignorance; and fear lest we should have anyway involved her
- in the dangers of our situation.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII
-
- I COME TO MR. RANKEILLOR
-
- The next day it was agreed that Alan should fend for himself till
- sunset; but as soon as it began to grow dark, he should lie in
- the fields by the roadside near to Newhalls, and stir for naught
- until he heard me whistling. At first I proposed I should give
- him for a signal the "Bonnie House of Airlie," which was a
- favourite of mine; but he objected that as the piece was very
- commonly known, any ploughman might whistle it by accident; and
- taught me instead a little fragment of a Highland air, which has
- run in my head from that day to this, and will likely run in my
- head when I lie dying. Every time it comes to me, it takes me off
- to that last day of my uncertainty, with Alan sitting up in the
- bottom of the den, whistling and beating the measure with a
- finger, and the grey of the dawn coming on his face.
-
- I was in the long street of Queensferry before the sun was up. It
- was a fairly built burgh, the houses of good stone, many slated;
- the town-hall not so fine, I thought, as that of Peebles, nor yet
- the street so noble; but take it altogether, it put me to shame
- for my foul tatters.
-
-
-
- As the morning went on, and the fires began to be kindled, and
- the windows to open, and the people to appear out of the houses,
- my concern and despondency grew ever the blacker. I saw now that
- I had no grounds to stand upon; and no clear proof of my rights,
- nor so much as of my own identity. If it was all a bubble, I was
- indeed sorely cheated and left in a sore pass. Even if things
- were as I conceived, it would in all likelihood take time to
- establish my contentions; and what time had I to spare with less
- than three shillings in my pocket, and a condemned, hunted man
- upon my hands to ship out of the country? Truly, if my hope
- broke with me, it might come to the gallows yet for both of us.
- And as I continued to walk up and down, and saw people looking
- askance at me upon the street or out of windows, and nudging or
- speaking one to another with smiles, I began to take a fresh
- apprehension: that it might be no easy matter even to come to
- speech of the lawyer, far less to convince him of my story.
-
- For the life of me I could not muster up the courage to address
- any of these reputable burghers; I thought shame even to speak
- with them in such a pickle of rags and dirt; and if I had asked
- for the house of such a man as Mr. Rankeillor, I suppose they
- would have burst out laughing in my face. So I went up and down,
- and through the street, and down to the harbour-side, like a dog
- that has lost its master, with a strange gnawing in my inwards,
- and every now and then a movement of despair. It grew to be high
- day at last, perhaps nine in the forenoon; and I was worn with
- these wanderings, and chanced to have stopped in front of a very
- good house on the landward side, a house with beautiful, clear
- glass windows, flowering knots upon the sills, the walls
- new-harled[33] and a chase-dog sitting yawning on the step like
- one that was at home. Well, I was even envying this dumb brute,
- when the door fell open and there issued forth a shrewd, ruddy,
- kindly, consequential man in a well-powdered wig and spectacles.
- I was in such a plight that no one set eyes on me once, but he
- looked at me again; and this gentleman, as it proved, was so much
- struck with my poor appearance that he came straight up to me and
- asked me what I did.
-
- [33]Newly rough-cast.
-
-
- I told him I was come to the Queensferry on business, and taking
- heart of grace, asked him to direct me to the house of Mr.
- Rankeillor.
-
- "Why," said he, "that is his house that I have just come out of;
- and for a rather singular chance, I am that very man."
-
- "Then, sir," said I, "I have to beg the favour of an interview."
-
- "I do not know your name," said he, "nor yet your face."
-
- "My name is David Balfour," said I.
-
- "David Balfour?" he repeated, in rather a high tone, like one
- surprised. "And where have you come from, Mr. David Balfour?" he
- asked, looking me pretty drily in the face.
-
- "I have come from a great many strange places, sir," said I; "but
- I think it would be as well to tell you where and how in a more
- private manner."
-
- He seemed to muse awhile, holding his lip in his hand, and
- looking now at me and now upon the causeway of the street.
-
- "Yes," says he, "that will be the best, no doubt." And he led me
- back with him into his house, cried out to some one whom I could
- not see that he would be engaged all morning, and brought me into
- a little dusty chamber full of books and documents. Here he sate
- down, and bade me be seated; though I thought he looked a little
- ruefully from his clean chair to my muddy rags. "And now," says
- he, "if you have any business, pray be brief and come swiftly to
- the point. Nec gemino bellum Trojanum orditur ab ovo --do you
- understand that?" says he, with a keen look.
-
- "I will even do as Horace says, sir," I answered, smiling, "and
- carry you in medias res." He nodded as if he was well pleased,
- and indeed his scrap of Latin had been set to test me. For all
- that, and though I was somewhat encouraged, the blood came in my
- face when I added: "I have reason to believe myself some rights
- on the estate of Shaws."
-
- He got a paper book out of a drawer and set it before him open.
- "Well?" said he.
-
- But I had shot my bolt and sat speechless.
-
- "Come, come, Mr. Balfour," said he, "you must continue. Where
- were you born?"
-
- "In Essendean, sir," said I, "the year 1733, the 12th of March."
-
- He seemed to follow this statement in his paper book; but what
- that meant I knew not. "Your father and mother?" said he.
-
- "My father was Alexander Balfour, schoolmaster of that place,"
- said I, "and my mother Grace Pitarrow; I think her people were
- from Angus."
-
- "Have you any papers proving your identity?" asked Mr.
- Rankeillor.
-
- "No, sir," said I, "but they are in the hands of Mr. Campbell,
- the minister, and could be readily produced. Mr. Campbell, too,
- would give me his word; and for that matter, I do not think my
- uncle would deny me."
-
- "Meaning Mr. Ebenezer Balfour?" says he.
-
- "The same," said I.
-
- "Whom you have seen?" he asked.
-
- "By whom I was received into his own house," I answered.
-
- "Did you ever meet a man of the name of Hoseason?" asked Mr.
- Rankeillor.
-
- "I did so, sir, for my sins," said I; "for it was by his means
- and the procurement of my uncle, that I was kidnapped within
- sight of this town, carried to sea, suffered shipwreck and a
- hundred other hardships, and stand before you to-day in this poor
- accoutrement."
-
- "You say you were shipwrecked," said Rankeillor; "where was
- that?"
-
- "Off the south end of the Isle of Mull," said I. "The name of the
- isle on which I was cast up is the Island Earraid."
-
- "Ah!" says he, smiling, "you are deeper than me in the geography.
- But so far, I may tell you, this agrees pretty exactly with other
- informations that I hold. But you say you were kidnapped; in what
- sense?"
-
- "In the plain meaning of the word, sir," said I. "I was on my way
- to your house, when I was trepanned on board the brig, cruelly
- struck down, thrown below, and knew no more of anything till we
- were far at sea. I was destined for the plantations; a fate that,
- in God's providence, I have escaped."
-
- "The brig was lost on June the 27th," says he, looking in his
- book," and we are now at August the 24th. Here is a considerable
- hiatus, Mr. Balfour, of near upon two months. It has already
- caused a vast amount of trouble to your friends; and I own I
- shall not be very well contented until it is set right."
-
- "Indeed, sir," said I, "these months are very easily filled up;
- but yet before I told my story, I would be glad to know that I
- was talking to a friend."
-
- "This is to argue in a circle," said the lawyer. "I cannot be
- convinced till I have heard you. I cannot be your friend till I
- am properly informed. If you were more trustful, it would better
- befit your time of life. And you know, Mr. Balfour, we have a
- proverb in the country that evil-doers are aye evil-dreaders."
-
- "You are not to forget, sir," said I, "that I have already
- suffered by my trustfulness; and was shipped off to be a slave by
- the very man that (if I rightly understand) is your employer?"
-
- All this while I had been gaining ground with Mr. Rankeillor, and
- in proportion as I gained ground, gaining confidence. But at
- this sally, which I made with something of a smile myself, he
- fairly laughed aloud.
-
- "No, no," said he, "it is not so bad as that. Fui, non sum. I
- was indeed your uncle's man of business; but while you (imberbis
- juvenis custode remoto) were gallivanting in the west, a good
- deal of water has run under the bridges; and if your ears did not
- sing, it was not for lack of being talked about. On the very day
- of your sea disaster, Mr. Campbell stalked into my office,
- demanding you from all the winds. I had never heard of your
- existence; but I had known your father; and from matters in my
- competence (to be touched upon hereafter) I was disposed to fear
- the worst. Mr. Ebenezer admitted having seen you; declared (what
- seemed improbable) that he had given you considerable sums; and
- that you had started for the continent of Europe, intending to
- fulfil your education, which was probable and praiseworthy.
- Interrogated how you had come to send no word to Mr. Campbell, he
- deponed that you had expressed a great desire to break with your
- past life. Further interrogated where you now were, protested
- ignorance, but believed you were in Leyden. That is a close sum
- of his replies. I am not exactly sure that any one believed
- him," continued Mr. Rankeillor with a smile; "and in particular
- he so much disrelished me expressions of mine that (in a word) he
- showed me to the door. We were then at a full stand; for
- whatever shrewd suspicions we might entertain, we had no shadow
- of probation. In the very article, comes Captain Hoseason with
- the story of your drowning; whereupon all fell through; with no
- consequences but concern to Mr. Campbell, injury to my pocket,
- and another blot upon your uncle's character, which could very
- ill afford it. And now, Mr. Balfour," said he, "you understand
- the whole process of these matters, and can judge for yourself to
- what extent I may be trusted."
-
- Indeed he was more pedantic than I can represent him, and placed
- more scraps of Latin in his speech; but it was all uttered with a
- fine geniality of eye and manner which went far to conquer my
- distrust. Moreover, I could see he now treated me as if I was
- myself beyond a doubt; so that first point of my identity seemed
- fully granted.
-
- "Sir," said I, "if I tell you my story, I must commit a friend's
- life to your discretion. Pass me your word it shall be sacred;
- and for what touches myself, I will ask no better guarantee than
- just your face."
-
- He passed me his word very seriously. "But," said he, "these are
- rather alarming prolocutions; and if there are in your story any
- little jostles to the law, I would beg you to bear in mind that I
- am a lawyer, and pass lightly."
-
- Thereupon I told him my story from the first, he listening with
- his spectacles thrust up and his eyes closed, so that I sometimes
- feared he was asleep. But no such matter! he heard every word
- (as I found afterward) with such quickness of hearing and
- precision of memory as often surprised me. Even strange
- outlandish Gaelic names, heard for that time only, he remembered
- and would remind me of, years after. Yet when I called Alan
- Breck in full, we had an odd scene. The name of Alan had of
- course rung through Scotland, with the news of the Appin murder
- and the offer of the reward; and it had no sooner escaped me than
- the lawyer moved in his seat and opened his eyes.
-
- "I would name no unnecessary names, Mr. Balfour," said he; "above
- all of Highlanders, many of whom are obnoxious to the law."
-
- "Well, it might have been better not," said I, "but since I have
- let it slip, I may as well continue."
-
- "Not at all," said Mr. Rankeillor. "I am somewhat dull of
- hearing, as you may have remarked; and I am far from sure I
- caught the name exactly. We will call your friend, if you
- please, Mr. Thomson -- that there may be no reflections. And in
- future, I would take some such way with any Highlander that you
- may have to mention -- dead or alive."
-
- By this, I saw he must have heard the name all too clearly, and
- had already guessed I might be coming to the murder. If he chose
- to play this part of ignorance, it was no matter of mine; so I
- smiled, said it was no very Highland-sounding name, and
- consented. Through all the rest of my story Alan was Mr.
- Thomson; which amused me the more, as it was a piece of policy
- after his own heart. James Stewart, in like manner, was
- mentioned under the style of Mr. Thomson's kinsman; Colin
- Campbell passed as a Mr. Glen; and to Cluny, when I came to that
- part of my tale, I gave the name of "Mr. Jameson, a Highland
- chief." It was truly the most open farce, and I wondered that
- the lawyer should care to keep it up; but, after all, it was
- quite in the taste of that age, when there were two parties in
- the state, and quiet persons, with no very high opinions of their
- own, sought out every cranny to avoid offence to either.
-
- "Well, well," said the lawyer, when I had quite done, "this is a
- great epic, a great Odyssey of yours. You must tell it, sir, in
- a sound Latinity when your scholarship is riper; or in English if
- you please, though for my part I prefer the stronger tongue. You
- have rolled much; quae regio in terris -- what parish in Scotland
- (to make a homely translation) has not been filled with your
- wanderings? You have shown, besides, a singular aptitude for
- getting into false positions; and, yes, upon the whole, for
- behaving well in them. This Mr. Thomson seems to me a gentleman
- of some choice qualities, though perhaps a trifle bloody-minded.
- It would please me none the worse, if (with all his merits) he
- were soused in the North Sea, for the man, Mr. David, is a sore
- embarrassment. But you are doubtless quite right to adhere to
- him; indubitably, he adhered to you. It comes -- we may say --
- he was your true companion; nor less paribus curis vestigia
- figit, for I dare say you would both take an orra thought upon
- the gallows. Well, well, these days are fortunately, by; and I
- think (speaking humanly) that you are near the end of your
- troubles."
-
- As he thus moralised on my adventures, he looked upon me with so
- much humour and benignity that I could scarce contain my
- satisfaction. I had been so long wandering with lawless people,
- and making my bed upon the hills and under the bare sky, that to
- sit once more in a clean, covered house, and to talk amicably
- with a gentleman in broadcloth, seemed mighty elevations. Even
- as I thought so, my eye fell on my unseemly tatters, and I was
- once more plunged in confusion. But the lawyer saw and
- understood me. He rose, called over the stair to lay another
- plate, for Mr. Balfour would stay to dinner, and led me into a
- bedroom in the upper part of the house. Here he set before me
- water and soap, and a comb; and laid out some clothes that
- belonged to his son; and here, with another apposite tag, he left
- me to my toilet.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII
-
- I GO IN QUEST OF MY INHERITANCE
-
- I made what change I could in my appearance; and blithe was I to
- look in the glass and find the beggarman a thing of the past, and
- David Balfour come to life again. And yet I was ashamed of the
- change too, and, above all, of the borrowed clothes. When I had
- done, Mr. Rankeillor caught me on the stair, made me his
- compliments, and had me again into the cabinet.
-
- "Sit ye down, Mr. David," said he, "and now that you are looking
- a little more like yourself, let me see if I can find you any
- news. You will be wondering, no doubt, about your father and
- your uncle? To be sure it is a singular tale; and the
- explanation is one that I blush to have to offer you. For," says
- he, really with embarrassment, "the matter hinges on a love
- affair."
-
- "Truly," said I, "I cannot very well join that notion with my
- uncle."
-
- "But your uncle, Mr. David, was not always old," replied the
- lawyer, "and what may perhaps surprise you more, not always ugly.
- He had a fine, gallant air; people stood in their doors to look
- after him, as he went by upon a mettle horse. I have seen it with
- these eyes, and I ingenuously confess, not altogether without
- envy; for I was a plain lad myself and a plain man's son; and in
- those days it was a case of Odi te, qui bellus es, Sabelle."
-
- "It sounds like a dream," said I.
-
- "Ay, ay," said the lawyer, "that is how it is with youth and age.
- Nor was that all, but he had a spirit of his own that seemed to
- promise great things in the future. In 1715, what must he do but
- run away to join the rebels? It was your father that pursued
- him, found him in a ditch, and brought him back multum gementem;
- to the mirth of the whole country. However, majora canamus --
- the two lads fell in love, and that with the same lady. Mr.
- Ebenezer, who was the admired and the beloved, and the spoiled
- one, made, no doubt, mighty certain of the victory; and when he
- found he had deceived himself, screamed like a peacock. The
- whole country heard of it; now he lay sick at home, with his
- silly family standing round the bed in tears; now he rode from
- public-house to public-house, and shouted his sorrows into the
- lug of Tom, Dick, and Harry. Your father, Mr. David, was a kind
- gentleman; but he was weak, dolefully weak; took all this folly
- with a long countenance; and one day -- by your leave! --
- resigned the lady. She was no such fool, however; it's from her
- you must inherit your excellent good sense; and she refused to be
- bandied from one to another. Both got upon their knees to her;
- and the upshot of the matter for that while was that she showed
- both of them the door. That was in August; dear me! the same
- year I came from college. The scene must have been highly
- farcical."
-
- I thought myself it was a silly business, but I could not forget
- my father had a hand in it. "Surely, sir, it had some note of
- tragedy," said I.
-
- "Why, no, sir, not at all," returned the lawyer. "For tragedy
- implies some ponderable matter in dispute, some dignus vindice
- nodus; and this piece of work was all about the petulance of a
- young ass that had been spoiled, and wanted nothing so much as to
- be tied up and soundly belted. However, that was not your
- father's view; and the end of it was, that from concession to
- concession on your father's part, and from one height to another
- of squalling, sentimental selfishness upon your uncle's, they
- came at last to drive a sort of bargain, from whose ill results
- you have recently been smarting. The one man took the lady, the
- other the estate. Now, Mr. David, they talk a great deal of
- charity and generosity; but in this disputable state of life, I
- often think the happiest consequences seem to flow when a
- gentleman consults his lawyer, and takes all the law allows him.
- Anyhow, this piece of Quixotry on your father's part, as it was
- unjust in itself, has brought forth a monstrous family of
- injustices. Your father and mother lived and died poor folk; you
- were poorly reared; and in the meanwhile, what a time it has been
- for the tenants on the estate of Shaws! And I might add (if it
- was a matter I cared much about) what a time for Mr. Ebenezer!"
-
- "And yet that is certainly the strangest part of all," said I,
- "that a man's nature should thus change."
-
- "True," said Mr. Rankeillor. "And yet I imagine it was natural
- enough. He could not think that he had played a handsome part.
- Those who knew the story gave him the cold shoulder; those who
- knew it not, seeing one brother disappear, and the other succeed
- in the estate, raised a cry of murder; so that upon all sides he
- found himself evited. Money was all he got by his bargain; well,
- he came to think the more of money. He was selfish when he was
- young, he is selfish now that he is old; and the latter end of
- all these pretty manners and fine feelings you have seen for
- yourself."
-
- "Well, sir," said I, "and in all this, what is my position?"
-
- "The estate is yours beyond a doubt," replied the lawyer. "It
- matters nothing what your father signed, you are the heir of
- entail. But your uncle is a man to fight the indefensible; and
- it would be likely your identity that he would call in question.
- A lawsuit is always expensive, and a family lawsuit always
- scandalous; besides which, if any of your doings with your friend
- Mr. Thomson were to come out, we might find that we had burned
- our fingers. The kidnapping, to be sure, would be a court card
- upon our side, if we could only prove it. But it may be difficult
- to prove; and my advice (upon the whole) is to make a very easy
- bargain with your uncle, perhaps even leaving him at Shaws where
- he has taken root for a quarter of a century, and contenting
- yourself in the meanwhile with a fair provision."
-
- I told him I was very willing to be easy, and that to carry
- family concerns before the public was a step from which I was
- naturally much averse. In the meantime (thinking to myself) I
- began to see the outlines of that scheme on which we afterwards
- acted.
-
- "The great affair," I asked, "is to bring home to him the
- kidnapping?"
-
- "Surely," said Mr. Rankeillor, "and if possible, out of court.
- For mark you here, Mr. David: we could no doubt find some men of
- the Covenant who would swear to your reclusion; but once they
- were in the box, we could no longer check their testimony, and
- some word of your friend Mr. Thomson must certainly crop out.
- Which (from what you have let fall) I cannot think to be
- desirable."
-
- "Well, sir," said I, "here is my way of it." And I opened my
- plot to him.
-
- "But this would seem to involve my meeting the man Thomson?"
- says he, when I had done.
-
- "I think so, indeed, sir," said I.
-
- "Dear doctor!" cries he, rubbing his brow. "Dear doctor! No,
- Mr. David, I am afraid your scheme is inadmissible. I say
- nothing against your friend, Mr. Thomson: I know nothing against
- him; and if I did -- mark this, Mr. David! -- it would be my duty
- to lay hands on him. Now I put it to you: is it wise to meet?
- He may have matters to his charge. He may not have told you all.
- His name may not be even Thomson!" cries the lawyer, twinkling;
- "for some of these fellows will pick up names by the roadside as
- another would gather haws."
-
- "You must be the judge, sir," said I.
-
- But it was clear my plan had taken hold upon his fancy, for he
- kept musing to himself till we were called to dinner and the
- company of Mrs. Rankeillor; and that lady had scarce left us
- again to ourselves and a bottle of wine, ere he was back harping
- on my proposal. When and where was I to meet my friend Mr.
- Thomson; was I sure of Mr. T.'s discretion; supposing we could
- catch the old fox tripping, would I consent to such and such a
- term of an agreement -- these and the like questions he kept
- asking at long intervals, while he thoughtfully rolled his wine
- upon his tongue. When I had answered all of them, seemingly to
- his contentment, he fell into a still deeper muse, even the
- claret being now forgotten. Then he got a sheet of paper and a
- pencil, and set to work writing and weighing every word; and at
- last touched a bell and had his clerk into the chamber.
-
- "Torrance," said he, "I must have this written out fair against
- to-night; and when it is done, you will be so kind as put on your
- hat and be ready to come along with this gentleman and me, for
- you will probably be wanted as a witness."
-
- "What, sir," cried I, as soon as the clerk was gone, "are you to
- venture it?"
-
- "Why, so it would appear," says he, filling his glass. "But let
- us speak no more of business. The very sight of Torrance brings
- in my head a little droll matter of some years ago, when I had
- made a tryst with the poor oaf at the cross of Edinburgh. Each
- had gone his proper errand; and when it came four o'clock,
- Torrance had been taking a glass and did not know his master, and
- I, who had forgot my spectacles, was so blind without them, that
- I give you my word I did not know my own clerk." And thereupon
- he laughed heartily.
-
- I said it was an odd chance, and smiled out of politeness; but
- what held me all the afternoon in wonder, he kept returning and
- dwelling on this story, and telling it again with fresh details
- and laughter; so that I began at last to be quite put out of
- countenance and feel ashamed for my friend's folly.
-
- Towards the time I had appointed with Alan, we set out from the
- house, Mr. Rankeillor and I arm in arm, and Torrance following
- behind with the deed in his pocket and a covered basket in his
- hand. All through the town, the lawyer was bowing right and
- left, and continually being button-holed by gentlemen on matters
- of burgh or private business; and I could see he was one greatly
- looked up to in the county. At last we were clear of the houses,
- and began to go along the side of the haven and towards the Hawes
- Inn and the Ferry pier, the scene of my misfortune. I could not
- look upon the place without emotion, recalling how many that had
- been there with me that day were now no more: Ransome taken, I
- could hope, from the evil to come; Shuan passed where I dared not
- follow him; and the poor souls that had gone down with the brig
- in her last plunge. All these, and the brig herself, I had
- outlived; and come through these hardships and fearful perils
- without scath. My only thought should have been of gratitude;
- and yet I could not behold the place without sorrow for others
- and a chill of recollected fear.
-
- I was so thinking when, upon a sudden, Mr. Rankeillor cried out,
- clapped his hand to his pockets, and began to laugh.
-
- "Why," he cries, "if this be not a farcical adventure! After all
- that I said, I have forgot my glasses!"
-
- At that, of course, I understood the purpose of his anecdote, and
- knew that if he had left his spectacles at home, it had been done
- on purpose, so that he might have the benefit of Alan's help
- without the awkwardness of recognising him. And indeed it was
- well thought upon; for now (suppose things to go the very worst)
- how could Rankeillor swear to my friend's identity, or how be
- made to bear damaging evidence against myself? For all that, he
- had been a long while of finding out his want, and had spoken to
- and recognised a good few persons as we came through the town;
- and I had little doubt myself that he saw reasonably well.
-
- As soon as we were past the Hawes (where I recognised the
- landlord smoking his pipe in the door, and was amazed to see him
- look no older) Mr. Rankeillor changed the order of march, walking
- behind with Torrance and sending me forward in the manner of a
- scout. I went up the hill, whistling from time to time my Gaelic
- air; and at length I had the pleasure to hear it answered and to
- see Alan rise from behind a bush. He was somewhat dashed in
- spirits, having passed a long day alone skulking in the county,
- and made but a poor meal in an alehouse near Dundas. But at the
- mere sight of my clothes, he began to brighten up; and as soon as
- I had told him in what a forward state our matters were and the
- part I looked to him to play in what remained, he sprang into a
- new man.
-
- "And that is a very good notion of yours," says he; "and I dare
- to say that you could lay your hands upon no better man to put it
- through than Alan Breck. It is not a thing (mark ye) that any
- one could do, but takes a gentleman of penetration. But it
- sticks in my head your lawyer-man will be somewhat wearying to
- see me," says Alan.
-
- Accordingly I cried and waved on Mr. Rankeillor, who came up
- alone and was presented to my friend, Mr. Thomson.
-
- "Mr. Thomson, I am pleased to meet you," said he. "But I have
- forgotten my glasses; and our friend, Mr. David here" (clapping
- me on the shoulder), "will tell you that I am little better than
- blind, and that you must not be surprised if I pass you by
- to-morrow."
-
- This he said, thinking that Alan would be pleased; but the
- Highlandman's vanity was ready to startle at a less matter than
- that.
-
- "Why, sir," says he, stiffly, "I would say it mattered the less
- as we are met here for a particular end, to see justice done to
- Mr. Balfour; and by what I can see, not very likely to have much
- else in common. But I accept your apology, which was a very
- proper one to make."
-
- "And that is more than I could look for, Mr. Thomson," said
- Rankeillor, heartily. "And now as you and I are the chief actors
- in this enterprise, I think we should come into a nice agreement;
- to which end, I propose that you should lend me your arm, for
- (what with the dusk and the want of my glasses) I am not very
- clear as to the path; and as for you, Mr. David, you will find
- Torrance a pleasant kind of body to speak with. Only let me
- remind you, it's quite needless he should hear more of your
- adventures or those of -- ahem -- Mr. Thomson."
-
- Accordingly these two went on ahead in very close talk, and
- Torrance and I brought up the rear.
-
- Night was quite come when we came in view of the house of Shaws.
- Ten had been gone some time; it was dark and mild, with a
- pleasant, rustling wind in the south-west that covered the sound
- of our approach; and as we drew near we saw no glimmer of light
- in any portion of the building. It seemed my uncle was Already
- in bed, which was indeed the best thing for our arrangements. We
- made our last whispered consultations some fifty yards away; and
- then the lawyer and Torrance and I crept quietly up and crouched
- down beside the corner of the house; and as soon as we were in
- our places, Alan strode to the door without concealment and began
- to knock.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX
-
- I COME INTO MY KINGDOM
-
- For some time Alan volleyed upon the door, and his knocking only
- roused the echoes of the house and neighbourhood. At last,
- however, I could hear the noise of a window gently thrust up, and
- knew that my uncle had come to his observatory. By what light
- there was, he would see Alan standing, like a dark shadow, on the
- steps; the three witnesses were hidden quite out of his view; so
- that there was nothing to alarm an honest man in his own house.
- For all that, he studied his visitor awhile in silence, and when
- he spoke his voice had a quaver of misgiving.
-
- "What's this?" says he. "This is nae kind of time of night for
- decent folk; and I hae nae trokings[34] wi' night-hawks. What
- brings ye here? I have a blunderbush."
-
- [34]Dealings.
-
-
- "Is that yoursel', Mr. Balfour?" returned Alan, stepping back and
- looking up into the darkness. "Have a care of that blunderbuss;
- they're nasty things to burst."
-
- "What brings ye here? and whae are ye?" says my uncle, angrily.
-
- "I have no manner of inclination to rowt out my name to the
- country-side," said Alan; "but what brings me here is another
- story, being more of your affair than mine; and if ye're sure
- it's what ye would like, I'll set it to a tune and sing it to
- you."
-
- "And what is't?" asked my uncle.
-
- "David," says Alan.
-
- "What was that?" cried my uncle, in a mighty changed voice.
-
- "Shall I give ye the rest of the name, then?" said Alan.
-
- There was a pause; and then, "I'm thinking I'll better let ye
- in," says my uncle, doubtfully.
-
- "I dare say that," said Alan; "but the point is, Would I go? Now
- I will tell you what I am thinking. I am thinking that it is
- here upon this doorstep that we must confer upon this business;
- and it shall be here or nowhere at all whatever; for I would have
- you to understand that I am as stiffnecked as yoursel', and a
- gentleman of better family."
-
- This change of note disconcerted Ebenezer; he was a little while
- digesting it, and then says he, "Weel, weel, what must be must,"
- and shut the window. But it took him a long time to get
- down-stairs, and a still longer to undo the fastenings, repenting
- (I dare say) and taken with fresh claps of fear at every second
- step and every bolt and bar. At last, however, we heard the
- creak of the hinges, and it seems my uncle slipped gingerly out
- and (seeing that Alan had stepped back a pace or two) sate him
- down on the top doorstep with the blunderbuss ready in his hands.
-
- "And, now" says he, "mind I have my blunderbush, and if ye take a
- step nearer ye're as good as deid."
-
- "And a very civil speech," says Alan, "to be sure."
-
- "Na," says my uncle, "but this is no a very chanty kind of a
- proceeding, and I'm bound to be prepared. And now that we
- understand each other, ye'll can name your business."
-
- "Why," says Alan, "you that are a man of so much understanding,
- will doubtless have perceived that I am a Hieland gentleman. My
- name has nae business in my story; but the county of my friends
- is no very far from the Isle of Mull, of which ye will have
- heard. It seems there was a ship lost in those parts; and the
- next day a gentleman of my family was seeking wreck-wood for his
- fire along the sands, when he came upon a lad that was half
- drowned. Well, he brought him to; and he and some other
- gentleman took and clapped him in an auld, ruined castle, where
- from that day to this he has been a great expense to my friends.
- My friends are a wee wild-like, and not so particular about the
- law as some that I could name; and finding that the lad owned
- some decent folk, and was your born nephew, Mr. Balfour, they
- asked me to give ye a bit call and confer upon the matter. And I
- may tell ye at the off-go, unless we can agree upon some terms,
- ye are little likely to set eyes upon him. For my friends,"
- added Alan, simply, "are no very well off."
-
- My uncle cleared his throat. "I'm no very caring," says he. "He
- wasnae a good lad at the best of it, and I've nae call to
- interfere."
-
- "Ay, ay," said Alan, "I see what ye would be at: pretending ye
- don't care, to make the ransom smaller."
-
- "Na," said my uncle, "it's the mere truth. I take nae manner of
- interest in the lad, and I'll pay nae ransome, and ye can make a
- kirk and a mill of him for what I care."
-
- "Hoot, sir," says Alan. "Blood's thicker than water, in the
- deil's name! Ye cannae desert your brother's son for the fair
- shame of it; and if ye did, and it came to be kennt, ye wouldnae
- be very popular in your country-side, or I'm the more deceived."
-
- "I'm no just very popular the way it is," returned Ebenezer; "and
- I dinnae see how it would come to be kennt. No by me, onyway;
- nor yet by you or your friends. So that's idle talk, my buckie,"
- says he.
-
- "Then it'll have to be David that tells it," said Alan.
-
- "How that?" says my uncle, sharply."
-
- "Ou, just this, way" says Alan. "My friends would doubtless keep
- your nephew as long as there was any likelihood of siller to be
- made of it, but if there was nane, I am clearly of opinion they
- would let him gang where he pleased, and be damned to him!"
-
- "Ay, but I'm no very caring about that either," said my uncle.
- "I wouldnae be muckle made up with that."
-
- "I was thinking that," said Alan.
-
- "And what for why?" asked Ebenezer.
-
- "Why, Mr. Balfour," replied Alan, "by all that I could hear,
- there were two ways of it: either ye liked David and would pay to
- get him back; or else ye had very good reasons for not wanting
- him, and would pay for us to keep him. It seems it's not the
- first; well then, it's the second; and blythe am I to ken it, for
- it should be a pretty penny in my pocket and the pockets of my
- friends."
-
- "I dinnae follow ye there," said my uncle.
-
- "No?" said Alan. "Well, see here: you dinnae want the lad back;
- well, what do ye want done with him, and how much will ye pay?"
-
- My uncle made no answer, but shifted uneasily on his seat.
-
- "Come, sir," cried Alan. "I would have you to ken that I am a
- gentleman; I bear a king's name; I am nae rider to kick my shanks
- at your hall door. Either give me an answer in civility, and
- that out of hand; or by the top of Glencoe, I will ram three feet
- of iron through your vitals."
-
- "Eh, man," cried my uncle, scrambling to his feet, "give me a
- meenit! What's like wrong with ye? I'm just a plain man and nae
- dancing master; and I'm tryin to be as ceevil as it's morally
- possible. As for that wild talk, it's fair disrepitable.
- Vitals, says you! And where would I be with my blunderbush?" he
- snarled.
-
- "Powder and your auld hands are but as the snail to the swallow
- against the bright steel in the hands of Alan," said the other.
- "Before your jottering finger could find the trigger, the hilt
- would dirl on your breast-bane."
-
- "Eh, man, whae's denying it?" said my uncle. "Pit it as ye
- please, hae't your ain way; I'll do naething to cross ye. Just
- tell me what like ye'll be wanting, and ye'll see that we'll can
- agree fine."
-
- "Troth, sir," said Alan, "I ask for nothing but plain dealing.
- In two words: do ye want the lad killed or kept?"
-
- "O, sirs!" cried Ebenezer. "O, sirs, me! that's no kind of
- language!"
-
- "Killed or kept!" repeated Alan.
-
- "O, keepit, keepit!" wailed my uncle. "We'll have nae bloodshed,
- if you please."
-
- "Well," says Alan, "as ye please; that'll be the dearer."
-
- "The dearer?" cries Ebenezer. "Would ye fyle your hands wi'
- crime?"
-
- "Hoot!" said Alan, "they're baith crime, whatever! And the
- killing's easier, and quicker, and surer. Keeping the lad'll be
- a fashious[35] job, a fashious, kittle business."
-
- [35]Troublesome.
-
-
- "I'll have him keepit, though," returned my uncle. "I never had
- naething to do with onything morally wrong; and I'm no gaun to
- begin to pleasure a wild Hielandman."
-
- "Ye're unco scrupulous," sneered Alan.
-
- "I'm a man o' principle," said Ebenezer, simply; "and if I have
- to pay for it, I'll have to pay for it. And besides," says he,
- "ye forget the lad's my brother's son."
-
- "Well, well," said Alan, "and now about the price. It's no very
- easy for me to set a name upon it; I would first have to ken some
- small matters. I would have to ken, for instance, what ye gave
- Hoseason at the first off-go?"
-
- "Hoseason!" cries my uncle, struck aback. "What for?"
-
- "For kidnapping David," says Alan.
-
- "It's a lee, it's a black lee!" cried my uncle. "He was never
- kidnapped. He leed in his throat that tauld ye that. Kidnapped?
- He never was!"
-
- "That's no fault of mine nor yet of yours," said Alan; "nor yet
- of Hoseason's, if he's a man that can be trusted."
-
- "What do ye mean?" cried Ebenezer. "Did Hoseason tell ye?"
-
- "Why, ye donnered auld runt, how else would I ken?" cried Alan.
- "Hoseason and me are partners; we gang shares; so ye can see for
- yoursel' what good ye can do leeing. And I must plainly say ye
- drove a fool's bargain when ye let a man like the sailor-man so
- far forward in your private matters. But that's past praying
- for; and ye must lie on your bed the way ye made it. And the
- point in hand is just this: what did ye pay him?"
-
- "Has he tauld ye himsel'?" asked my uncle.
-
- "That's my concern," said Alan.
-
- "Weel," said my uncle, "I dinnae care what he said, he leed, and
- the solemn God's truth is this, that I gave him twenty pound.
- But I'll be perfec'ly honest with ye: forby that, he was to have
- the selling of the lad in Caroliny, whilk would be as muckle
- mair, but no from my pocket, ye see."
-
- "Thank you, Mr. Thomson. That will do excellently well," said
- the lawyer, stepping forward; and then mighty civilly,
- "Good-evening, Mr. Balfour," said he.
-
- And, "Good-evening, Uncle Ebenezer," said I.
-
- And, "It's a braw nicht, Mr. Balfour" added Torrance.
-
- Never a word said my uncle, neither black nor white; but just sat
- where he was on the top door-step and stared upon us like a man
- turned to stone. Alan filched away his blunderbuss; and the
- lawyer, taking him by the arm, plucked him up from the doorstep,
- led him into the kitchen, whither we all followed, and set him
- down in a chair beside the hearth, where the fire was out and
- only a rush-light burning.
-
- There we all looked upon him for a while, exulting greatly in our
- success, but yet with a sort of pity for the man's shame.
-
- "Come, come, Mr. Ebenezer," said the lawyer, "you must not be
- down-hearted, for I promise you we shall make easy terms. In the
- meanwhile give us the cellar key, and Torrance shall draw us a
- bottle of your father's wine in honour of the event." Then,
- turning to me and taking me by the hand, "Mr. David," says he, "I
- wish you all joy in your good fortune, which I believe to be
- deserved." And then to Alan, with a spice of drollery, "Mr.
- Thomson, I pay you my compliment; it was most artfully conducted;
- but in one point you somewhat outran my comprehension. Do I
- understand your name to be James? or Charles? or is it George,
- perhaps?"
-
- "And why should it be any of the three, sir?" quoth Alan, drawing
- himself up, like one who smelt an offence.
-
- "Only, sir, that you mentioned a king's name," replied
- Rankeillor; "and as there has never yet been a King Thomson, or
- his fame at least has never come my way, I judged you must refer
- to that you had in baptism."
-
- This was just the stab that Alan would feel keenest, and I am
- free to confess he took it very ill. Not a word would he answer,
- but stepped off to the far end of the kitchen, and sat down and
- sulked; and it was not till I stepped after him, and gave him my
- hand, and thanked him by title as the chief spring of my success,
- that he began to smile a bit, and was at last prevailed upon to
- join our party.
-
- By that time we had the fire lighted, and a bottle of wine
- uncorked; a good supper came out of the basket, to which Torrance
- and I and Alan set ourselves down; while the lawyer and my uncle
- passed into the next chamber to consult. They stayed there
- closeted about an hour; at the end of which period they had come
- to a good understanding, and my uncle and I set our hands to the
- agreement in a formal manner. By the terms of this, my uncle
- bound himself to satisfy Rankeillor as to his intromissions, and
- to pay me two clear thirds of the yearly income of Shaws.
-
- So the beggar in the ballad had come home; and when I lay down
- that night on the kitchen chests, I was a man of means and had a
- name in the country. Alan and Torrance and Rankeillor slept and
- snored on their hard beds; but for me who had lain out under
- heaven and upon dirt and stones, so many days and nights, and
- often with an empty belly, and in fear of death, this good change
- in my case unmanned me more than any of the former evil ones; and
- I lay till dawn, looking at the fire on the roof and planning the
- future.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX
-
- GOOD-BYE
-
- So far as I was concerned myself, I had come to port; but I had
- still Alan, to whom I was so much beholden, on my hands; and I
- felt besides a heavy charge in the matter of the murder and James
- of the Glens. On both these heads I unbosomed to Rankeillor the
- next morning, walking to and fro about six of the clock before
- the house of Shaws, and with nothing in view but the fields and
- woods that had been my ancestors' and were now mine. Even as I
- spoke on these grave subjects, my eye would take a glad bit of a
- run over the prospect, and my heart jump with pride.
-
- About my clear duty to my friend, the lawyer had no doubt. I
- must help him out of the county at whatever risk; but in the case
- of James, he was of a different mind.
-
- "Mr. Thomson," says he, "is one thing, Mr. Thomson's kinsman
- quite another. I know little of the facts, but I gather that a
- great noble (whom we will call, if you like, the D. of A.)[36]
- has some concern and is even supposed to feel some animosity in
- the matter. The D. of A. is doubtless an excellent nobleman;
- but, Mr. David, timeo qui nocuere deos. If you interfere to balk
- his vengeance, you should remember there is one way to shut your
- testimony out; and that is to put you in the dock. There, you
- would be in the same pickle as Mr. Thomson's kinsman. You will
- object that you are innocent; well, but so is he. And to be
- tried for your life before a Highland jury, on a Highland quarrel
- and with a Highland Judge upon the bench, would be a brief
- transition to the gallows."
-
- [36]The Duke of Argyle.
-
-
- Now I had made all these reasonings before and found no very good
- reply to them; so I put on all the simplicity I could. "In that
- case, sir," said I, "I would just have to be hanged -- would I
- not?"
-
- "My dear boy," cries he, "go in God's name, and do what you think
- is right. It is a poor thought that at my time of life I should
- be advising you to choose the safe and shameful; and I take it
- back with an apology. Go and do your duty; and be hanged, if you
- must, like a gentleman. There are worse things in the world than
- to be hanged."
-
- "Not many, sir," said I, smiling.
-
- "Why, yes, sir," he cried, "very many. And it would be ten times
- better for your uncle (to go no farther afield) if he were
- dangling decently upon a gibbet."
-
- Thereupon he turned into the house (still in a great fervour of
- mind, so that I saw I had pleased him heartily) and there he
- wrote me two letters, making his comments on them as he wrote.
-
- "This," says he, "is to my bankers, the British Linen Company,
- placing a credit to your name. Consult Mr. Thomson, he will know
- of ways; and you, with this credit, can supply the means. I
- trust you will be a good husband of your money; but in the affair
- of a friend like Mr. Thompson, I would be even prodigal. Then
- for his kinsman, there is no better way than that you should seek
- the Advocate, tell him your tale, and offer testimony; whether he
- may take it or not, is quite another matter, and will turn on the
- D. of A. Now, that you may reach the Lord Advocate well
- recommended, I give you here a letter to a namesake of your own,
- the learned Mr. Balfour of Pilrig, a man whom I esteem. It will
- look better that you should be presented by one of your own name;
- and the laird of Pilrig is much looked up to in the Faculty and
- stands well with Lord Advocate Grant. I would not trouble him,
- if I were you, with any particulars; and (do you know?) I think
- it would be needless to refer to Mr. Thomson. Form yourself upon
- the laird, he is a good model; when you deal with the Advocate,
- be discreet; and in all these matters, may the Lord guide you,
- Mr. David!"
-
- Thereupon he took his farewell, and set out with Torrance for the
- Ferry, while Alan and I turned our faces for the city of
- Edinburgh. As we went by the footpath and beside the gateposts
- and the unfinished lodge, we kept looking back at the house of my
- fathers. It stood there, bare and great and smokeless, like a
- place not lived in; only in one of the top windows, there was the
- peak of a nightcap bobbing up and down and back and forward, like
- the head of a rabbit from a burrow. I had little welcome when I
- came, and less kindness while I stayed; but at least I was
- watched as I went away.
-
- Alan and I went slowly forward upon our way, having little heart
- either to walk or speak. The same thought was uppermost in both,
- that we were near the time of our parting; and remembrance of all
- the bygone days sate upon us sorely. We talked indeed of what
- should be done; and it was resolved that Alan should keep to the
- county, biding now here, now there, but coming once in the day to
- a particular place where I might be able to communicate with him,
- either in my own person or by messenger. In the meanwhile, I was
- to seek out a lawyer, who was an Appin Stewart, and a man
- therefore to be wholly trusted; and it should be his part to find
- a ship and to arrange for Alan's safe embarkation. No sooner was
- this business done, than the words seemed to leave us; and though
- I would seek to jest with Alan under the name of Mr. Thomson, and
- he with me on my new clothes and my estate, you could feel very
- well that we were nearer tears than laughter.
-
- We came the by-way over the hill of Corstorphine; and when we got
- near to the place called Rest-and-be-Thankful, and looked down on
- Corstorphine bogs and over to the city and the castle on the
- hill, we both stopped, for we both knew without a word said that
- we had come to where our ways parted. Here he repeated to me
- once again what had been agreed upon between us: the address of
- the lawyer, the daily hour at which Alan might be found, and the
- signals that were to be made by any that came seeking him. Then
- I gave what money I had (a guinea or two of Rankeillor's) so that
- he should not starve in the meanwhile; and then we stood a space,
- and looked over at Edinburgh in silence.
-
- "Well, good-bye," said Alan, and held out his left hand.
-
- "Good-bye," said I, and gave the hand a little grasp, and went
- off down hill.
-
- Neither one of us looked the other in the face, nor so long as he
- was in my view did I take one back glance at the friend I was
- leaving. But as I went on my way to the city, I felt so lost and
- lonesome, that I could have found it in my heart to sit down by
- the dyke, and cry and weep like any baby.
-
- It was coming near noon when I passed in by the West Kirk and the
- Grassmarket into the streets of the capital. The huge height of
- the buildings, running up to ten and fifteen storeys, the narrow
- arched entries that continually vomited passengers, the wares of
- the merchants in their windows, the hubbub and endless stir, the
- foul smells and the fine clothes, and a hundred other particulars
- too small to mention, struck me into a kind of stupor of
- surprise, so that I let the crowd carry me to and fro; and yet
- all the time what I was thinking of was Alan at
- Rest-and-be-Thankful; and all the time (although you would think
- I would not choose but be delighted with these braws and
- novelties) there was a cold gnawing in my inside like a remorse
- for something wrong.
-
- The hand of Providence brought me in my drifting to the very
- doors of the British Linen Company's bank.
-
-
-
-
- End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Kidnapped by R. L. Stevenson
-
-